Selected quad for the lemma: england_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
england_n daughter_n henry_n king_n 17,788 5 4.5034 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A62548 A treatise of religion and governmemt [sic] with reflexions vpon the cause and cure of Englands late distempers and present dangersĀ· The argument vvhether Protestancy is less dangerous to the soul, or more advantagious to the state, then the Roman Catholick religion? The conclusion that piety and policy are mistaken in promoting Protestancy, and persecuting Popery by penal and sanguinary statuts. Wilson, John, M.A. 1670 (1670) Wing T118; ESTC R223760 471,564 687

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o this_o realm_n make_v in_o the_o 25._o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o king_n your_o father_n be_v repeal_v and_o be_v it_o void_a and_o of_o no_o effect_n as_o also_o all_o and_o every_o such_o clause_n article_n branch_n and_o matter_n contain_v and_o express_v in_o the_o afforsay_v act_n of_o parliament_n make_v in_o the_o say_v 28._o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o say_v late_a king_n your_o father_n or_o in_o any_o other_o act_n or_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o whereby_o your_o highness_n be_v name_v or_o declare_v to_o be_v ilegitimat_fw-la or_o the_o say_a marriage_n between_o the_o say_a king_n your_o father_n and_o the_o say_a queen_n your_o mother_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o by_o any_o mean_v unlawful_a shall_v be_v and_o be_v repeal_v and_o be_v void_a and_o of_o no_o force_n nor_o effect_n to_o all_o intent_n construction_n and_o purpose_n as_o if_o the_o same_o sentence_n or_o act_n of_o parliament_n have_v never_o be_v have_v nor_o make_v and_o that_o the_o say_a marriage_n have_v and_o solemnize_v between_o your_o say_a most_o noble_a father_n king_n henry_n and_o your_o say_v most_o noble_a mother_n queen_n catharin_n shall_v be_v definitiu_o clear_o and_o absolute_o declare_v deem_v and_o adjudge_v be_v and_o stand_v with_o god_n law_n and_o his_o most_o holy_a word_n and_o to_o be_v accept_v repute_a and_o take_v of_o good_a effect_n and_o validity_n to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n etc._n etc._n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o force_n and_o fraud_n use_v by_o king_n henry_n 8._o cranmer_z and_o other_o engage_v in_o this_o divorce_n be_v so_o plain_o manifest_v the_o catholic_n faith_n reestablish_v the_o folly_n and_o falsehood_n of_o former_a schism_n and_o heresy_n public_o acknowledge_v yet_o no_o soon_o be_v queen_n mary_n decease_v than_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o her_o protestant_a faction_n resolve_v to_o return_v to_o the_o former_a error_n whereunto_o vicious_a person_n who_o always_o be_v the_o great_a number_n be_v as_o vehement_o incline_v as_o man_n be_v to_o enjoy_v their_o liberty_n and_o to_o excuse_v the_o sensuality_n which_o they_o practise_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o religion_n 107._o and_o though_o it_o seem_v a_o business_n of_o great_a difficulty_n for_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o her_o council_n to_o revive_v a_o reformation_n which_o have_v be_v so_o late_o cry_v down_o as_o schism_n and_o heresy_n by_o the_o unanimous_a concurrence_n of_o a_o full_a and_o lawful_a parliament_n yet_o her_o regal_a authority_n her_o sex_n and_o word_n wrought_v so_o strong_o upon_o the_o weakness_n of_o some_o and_o upon_o the_o ambition_n of_o other_o that_o she_o gain_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n and_o yet_o but_o by_o on_o only_a voice_n for_o establish_v protestancy_n the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n employ_v in_o her_o service_n all_o their_o interest_n with_o friend_n and_o relation_n against_o the_o religion_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o such_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n say_v d._n r_o heylin_n as_o have_v the_o manage_n of_o election_n of_o their_o several_a county_n retain_v such_o for_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o as_o they_o conceive_v most_o lik_o to_o comply_v with_o their_o intention_n for_o a_o reformation_n beside_o say_v he_o the_o queen_n be_v young_a unmarried_a and_o like_a enough_o to_o entertain_v some_o thought_n of_o a_o husband_n so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o great_a marvel_n not_o only_o if_o many_o of_o the_o nobility_n but_o some_o even_o of_o the_o gentry_n also_o flatter_v themselves_o with_o possibility_n of_o be_v the_o man_n who_o she_o may_v choose_v to_o be_v her_o partner_n in_o the_o regal_a diadem_n which_o hope_v much_o smooth_v the_o way_n to_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o her_o desire_n which_o otherwise_o may_v have_v prove_v more_o rugged_a and_o unpassable_a etc._n etc._n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o device_n and_o compliance_n they_o never_o pass_v a_o act_n in_o parliament_n for_o the_o validity_n of_o her_o mother_n marriage_n on_o which_o say_v heylin_n her_o title_n most_o depend_v it_o seem_v the_o late_a former_a act_n declare_v the_o validity_n of_o queen_n catherine_n marriage_n deter_v she_o from_o attempt_v a_o other_o incompatible_a therewith_o and_o wherein_o man_n must_v have_v have_v contradict_v themselves_o most_o imprudent_o as_o also_o the_o truth_n assert_v by_o the_o many_o witness_n and_o confirm_v with_o such_o individual_a circumstance_n that_o without_o infamy_n to_o the_o late_a parliament_n they_o can_v not_o take_v from_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o brand_n of_o bastardy_n yet_o they_o resolve_v it_o shall_v be_v no_o bar_n between_o she_o and_o the_o crown_n and_o so_o they_o thrust_v she_o into_o the_o throne_n which_o of_o right_n belong_v to_o mary_n steward_n queen_n of_o scotland_n as_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o that_o be_v not_o persuade_v catholic_n religion_n do_v make_v sovereigns_n incapable_a of_o regal_a jurisdiction_n sect_n vii_o other_o effect_n of_o protestancy_n after_o it_o be_v revive_v in_o england_n by_o q._n elizabeth_n to_o exclude_v the_o royal_a family_n of_o the_o steward_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o nulity_n of_o she_o clergy_n character_n and_o jurisdiction_n by_o king_n henry_n 8._o his_o revolt_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o the_o religion_n but_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n be_v so_o embroil_v that_o very_o many_o who_o have_v no_o right_n entertain_v hope_n of_o ascend_v into_o the_o royal_a throne_n some_o by_o fish_v in_o trouble_a water_n other_o by_o marry_v q._n elizabeth_n other_o by_o their_o descent_n from_o the_o young_a daughter_n of_o king_n henry_n 7._o all_o mention_n of_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o elder_a sister_n have_v be_v omit_v or_o blot_v out_o of_o the_o last_o will_v and_o testament_n of_o k._n henry_n 8._o and_o q._n elizabeth_n have_v be_v declare_v ilegitimat_fw-la by_o three_o act_n of_o different_a parliament_n which_o never_o yet_o be_v repeal_v very_o few_o there_o be_v that_o do_v not_o hold_v their_o own_o title_n to_o be_v more_o legal_a than_o she_o this_o confusion_n also_o make_v the_o queen_n of_o scot_n know_v right_o to_o be_v neglect_v but_o the_o french_a king_n who_o be_v concern_v therein_o command_v she_o to_o be_v proclaim_v q._n of_o england_n and_o quarter_v the_o arm_n of_o great_a brittany_n with_o his_o lily_n q._n elizabeth_n apprehend_v some_o danger_n from_o a_o title_n so_o clear_a second_v with_o the_o power_n of_o france_n and_o scotland_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o secretary_n cecil_n and_o other_o resolve_v upon_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o catholic_n party_n and_o clergy_n which_o favour_v the_o steward_n claim_n 5.22_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n as_o be_v suitable_a both_o to_o her_o birth_n and_o interest_n be_v revive_v and_o a_o new_a character_n of_o priesthood_n and_o episcopacy_n devise_v not_o imprint_v in_o the_o soul_n by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n but_o in_o wax_n as_o if_o forsooth_o by_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o a_o she_o supremacy_n a_o woman_n or_o lay_v man_n may_v make_v bishop_n this_o superficial_a formality_n be_v declare_v a_o sufficient_a character_n and_o ground_n of_o episcopacy_n by_o a_o junta_n of_o her_o majesty_n lawyer_n and_o divine_n as_o appear_v in_o their_o definitive_a sentence_n and_o her_o commission_n 1566_o to_o the_o consecrater_n of_o her_o first_o bishop_n d._n r_o parker_n and_o other_o wherein_o she_o dispense_v with_o all_o the_o inhability_n and_o incapasity_n even_o of_o their_o state_n and_o condition_n because_o the_o true_a bishop_n refuse_v to_o ordain_v her_o clergy_n and_o a_o clergy_n she_o be_v resolve_v to_o have_v that_o will_v vote_n in_o parliament_n and_o instruct_v the_o people_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a for_o her_o succession_n and_o security_n and_o because_o the_o roman_n catholic_n writer_n of_o those_o time_n laugh_v at_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n episcopacy_n and_o bid_v they_o show_v the_o letter_n of_o their_o order_n not_o the_o letter_n paten_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o tell_v they_o a_o secular_a prince_n may_v give_v they_o the_o revenue_n of_o bishopric_n but_o not_o the_o character_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o same_o catholic_n writer_n insist_v much_o upon_o their_o adversary_n not_o be_v able_a to_o name_v what_o bishop_n do_v consecrat_v they_o and_o beside_o plead_v in_o the_o public_a court_n they_o be_v not_o realy_a nor_o legaly_a ordain_v and_o that_o afterward_o it_o appear_v so_o to_o the_o jury_n appoint_v for_o the_o examination_n thereof_o both_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o bishop_n find_v it_o absolute_o necessary_a for_o her_o credit_n and_o their_o character_n to_o ratify_v all_o act_n and_o thing_n
divino_fw-la otherwise_o how_o can_v s._n peter_n be_v call_v by_o the_o evangelist_n chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n or_o primus_fw-la in_o dignity_n see_v his_o brother_n s._n andrew_n be_v the_o first_o disciple_n or_o primus_fw-la in_o antiquity_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o chief_a among_o the_o apostle_n how_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o their_o successor_n shall_v be_v all_o equal_a or_o that_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o chief_a apostle_n can_v be_v deprive_v of_o a_o prerogative_n so_o necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n and_o government_n of_o the_o succeed_a church_n or_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o this_o supremacy_n as_o s._n peter_n successor_n and_o by_o christ_n appointment_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o all_o the_o christian_a prince_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v conspire_v or_o consent_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o one_o who_o temporal_a power_n can_v not_o force_v that_o submission_n and_o they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o fear_v his_o spiritual_a more_o than_o that_o of_o other_o patriarch_n or_o bishop_n confine_v to_o their_o own_o diocese_n these_o be_v the_o king_n reason_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n against_o luther_n but_o now_o his_o passion_n make_v he_o contradict_v his_o pen_n and_o love_v though_o blind_a give_v he_o eye_n to_o see_v more_o of_o christ_n mind_n since_o he_o have_v see_v anne_n bullen_n than_o all_o the_o world_n have_v discern_v in_o 1500._o year_n before_o he_o declare_v therefore_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a jurisdiction_n be_v a_o mere_a usurpation_n and_o that_o every_o temporal_a sovereign_n be_v pope_n in_o his_o own_o dominion_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o prerogative_n he_o declare_v his_o own_o marriage_n with_o q._n catharin_n void_a marry_v anne_n bullen_n and_o seize_v upon_o all_o the_o land_n and_o treasur_n of_o the_o monastery_n and_o abbey_n dispense_v with_o all_o the_o young_a friar_n and_o monk_n vow_n of_o obedience_n and_o chastity_n after_o that_o he_o have_v take_v a_o order_n they_o shall_v not_o break_v the_o vow_n of_o poverty_n and_o to_o that_o purpose_n frame_v a_o instrument_n and_o force_v the_o religious_a to_o sign_v it_o wherein_o they_o declare_v that_o now_o at_o length_n through_o god_n great_a mercy_n they_o have_v be_v inspire_v and_o illuminate_v to_o see_v the_o inconsistency_n of_o a●●_n monastical_a life_n with_o true_a christianity_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o therefore_o they_o humble_o petition_v his_o majesty_n by_o mean_n of_o his_o vicar_n general_n in_o spiritualibus_fw-la cromwell_n who_o be_v earl_n of_o essex_n and_o a_o black-smith_n son_n of_o putney_n to_o restore_v they_o to_o christian_a liberty_n and_o a_o secular_a life_n and_o because_o the_o abbot_n of_o glastenbury_n reading_n gloucester_n and_o many_o other_o will_v not_o subscribe_v to_o this_o instrument_n nor_o by_o their_o approbation_n thereof_o declare_v that_o s._n austin_n the_o monk_n and_o apostle_n of_o england_n who_o convert_v the_o saxon_n to_o christian_a religion_n profess_v a_o life_n inconsistent_a with_o christianity_n they_o be_v crue_o torment_v and_o put_v to_o death_n the_o same_o tyranny_n be_v execute_v upon_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n without_o distinction_n of_o age_n sex_n or_o quality_n and_o among_o they_o suffer_v also_o sir_n thomas_n moor_n lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n and_o cardinal_n fisher_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n two_o of_o the_o great_a ornament_n of_o that_o age_n for_o refuse_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o for_o that_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n alias_z becket_n have_v oppose_v k._n henry_n 2._o law_n make_v rather_o against_o the_o exercise_n than_o the_o right_n of_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a authority_n in_o england_n and_o therefore_o be_v kill_v by_o some_o officious_a courtier_n and_o honour_v as_o a_o martyr_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o his_o sanctity_n and_o martyrdom_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o most_o authentic_a miracle_n which_o also_o confirm_v the_o pope_n spiritual_a supremacy_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o condemn_a king_n henry_n 8._o vanity_n he_o without_o fear_n of_o god_n or_o regard_n of_o the_o world_n cite_v a_o saint_n reign_v in_o heaven_n to_o appear_v and_o hear_v upon_o earth_n his_o sentence_n which_o be_v to_o have_v his_o relic_n burn_v the_o treasure_n of_o his_o church_n and_o shrine_n confiscate_v and_o all_o those_o declare_a traitor_n that_o will_v call_v he_o saint_n or_o celebrat_v his_o feast_n or_o permit_v his_o name_n to_o remain_v in_o the_o kalendar_n of_o their_o book_n of_o devotion_n he_o also_o prohitit_v his_o subject_n to_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n pope_n and_o every_o one_o who_o have_v s._n cyprian_a s._n ambrose_n s._n hierom_n s._n austin_n s._n leo_n or_o any_o of_o the_o father_n work_n be_v command_v to_o write_v in_o the_o first_o leaf_n thereof_o that_o they_o renounce_v those_o saint_n doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n not_o content_a with_o these_o extravagancy_n at_o home_n he_o send_v ambassador_n to_o solicit_v prince_n abroad_o and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o francis_n 1._o of_o france_n that_o they_o may_v follow_v his_o example_n in_o assume_v the_o supremacy_n and_o albeit_o the_o pope_n be_v either_o agree_v or_o engage_v in_o a_o treaty_n with_o charles_n 5._o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o france_n 1._o yet_o that_o christian_a king_n will_v not_o as_o much_o as_o hear_v henry_n 8._o ambassador_n speak_v of_o his_o imitate_v their_o master_n in_o assume_v to_o him-self_n the_o supremacy_n morison_n and_o even_o the_o protestant_a prince_n of_o germany_n to_o who_o the_o ambassador_n repair_v after_o that_o their_o negotiation_n have_v be_v reject_v by_o the_o french_a king_n tell_v they_o they_o be_v sorry_a k._n henry_n 8._o do_v not_o ground_n his_o reformation_n upon_o a_o more_o religious_a foundation_n than_o his_o scandalous_a passion_n for_o anne_n bullen_n and_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n abroad_o part_n of_o who_o design_n be_v to_o get_v all_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n rather_o into_o their_o own_o hand_n then_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o temporal_a sovereign_n be_v much_o trouble_v at_o k._n henry_n supremacy_n and_o calvin_n write_v a_o smart_n though_o short_a treatise_n against_o it_o and_o no_o protestant_n make_v a_o lie_v prince_n spiritual_a head_n of_o a_o church_n but_o our_o english_a prelaticks_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o lateness_n of_o the_o discovery_n together_o with_o k._n henry_n 8_o motive_n of_o his_o supremacy_n make_v it_o so_o incredible_a that_o no_o catholic_n sovereign_a will_v assume_v to_o him-self_n that_o prerogative_n nor_o any_o foreign_a protestant_n approve_v thereof_o yet_o his_o cruelty_n make_v most_o of_o his_o english_a subject_n swear_v that_o which_o neither_o themselves_o nor_o the_o world_n can_v believe_v for_o have_v it_o be_v any_o way_n probable_a by_o scripture_n history_n or_o tradition_n that_o temporal_a sovereign_n as_o such_o be_v spiritual_a superior_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o all_o christian_a prince_n before_o henry_n 8._o shall_v be_v so_o shortsighted_a and_o stupid_a in_o their_o own_o interest_n and_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n as_o not_o to_o see_v a_o thing_n so_o obvious_a and_o advantageous_a how_o careless_a in_o their_o own_o concern_v be_v charles_n 5._o francis_n 1._o and_o many_o other_o prince_n their_o predecessor_n who_o after_o have_v be_v provoke_v and_o exasperate_v by_o some_o roman_a bishop_n so_o far_o as_o to_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o invade_v their_o territory_n sack_n rome_n and_o imprison_v their_o person_n yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o spiritual_a supremacy_n which_o give_v so_o much_o advantage_n power_n and_o credit_n to_o their_o enemy_n without_o doubt_v the_o same_o force_n which_o have_v be_v employ_v against_o the_o pope_n person_n and_o temporal_a power_n will_v not_o have_v spare_v or_o favour_v his_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n he_o will_v have_v be_v force_v to_o renounce_v his_o primacy_n have_v not_o the_o world_n and_o they_o who_o subdue_v he_o be_v full_o satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v no_o human_a donation_n but_o divin_fw-fr institution_n though_o these_o reason_n be_v convince_a and_o the_o example_n of_o charles_n 5._o spiritual_a subjection_n and_o submission_n to_o his_o subdue_a prisoner_n pope_n clement_n 7._o be_v fresh_a in_o king_n henry_n 8._o memory_n and_o that_o he_o know_v never_o any_o catholic_n prince_n pretend_v it_o be_v a_o prerogative_n of_o sovereignty_n to_o share_v with_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o subject_n though_o many_o clame_v as_o a_o privilege_n grant_v by_o the_o roman_a sea_n the_o liberty_n to_o examine_v and_o approve_v the_o authentikness_n of_o papal_a censure_n and_o injunction_n and_o that_o his_o passion_n for_o anne_n bullen_n be_v turn_v into_o hatred_n
etc._n for_o she_o prove_v incest_n and_o adultery_n yet_o his_o pride_n and_o wilfulness_n be_v so_o excessive_a that_o rather_o than_o acknowledge_v his_o former_a error_n by_o a_o formal_a recantation_n he_o continue_v to_o exercise_v his_o scandalous_a supremacy_n so_o violent_o that_o he_o devise_v article_n of_o religion_n make_v cromwell_n his_o vicar-general_a in_o spiritual_a affair_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o define_v what_o be_v heresy_n what_o catholic_n faith_n permit_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v translate_v by_o heretic_n and_o read_v in_o english_a and_o to_o vex_v the_o pope_n countenance_v and_o connive_v at_o any_o novelty_n though_o afterward_o he_o burn_v the_o novelist_n for_o heretic_n and_o prohibit_v when_o it_o be_v too_o late_o their_o translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o other_o book_n which_o he_o have_v former_o permit_v but_o see_v that_o notwithstanding_o his_o severity_n the_o sacramentarian_a heresy_n which_o he_o most_o of_o all_o hate_a do_v increase_v in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n in_o his_o lay_n hand_n do_v not_o work_v those_o effect_n which_o it_o have_v do_v when_o it_o be_v manage_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o who_o sole_a authority_n all_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n be_v condemn_v and_o suppress_v without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o that_o the_o key_n which_o he_o have_v usurp_v serve_v rather_o to_o open_v the_o door_n of_o the_o english_a church_n to_o all_o error_n abolish_v than_o shut_v they_o out_o and_o perceive_v his_o end_n draw_v near_o he_o begin_v to_o think_v of_o a_o reconciliation_n with_o rome_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o may_v suit_v with_o his_o humour_n which_o he_o term_v honour_n therefore_o he_o send_v his_o favourite_n bishop_n gardener_n to_o the_o jmperial_a diet_n with_o private_a instruction_n to_o endeavour_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n his_o return_n to_o the_o unity_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n through_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o catholic_n prince_n of_o germany_n and_o of_o the_o pop_n legate_n that_o on_o king_n henrys_n side_n it_o may_v look_v more_o like_o a_o princely_a condescendency_n then_o a_o penitent_a conversion_n whereunto_o he_o seem_v to_o incline_v at_o the_o solicitation_n rather_o of_o other_o then_o move_v by_o a_o detestation_n of_o his_o own_o error_n but_o god_n with_o who_o none_o must_v dally_v nor_o prince_n capitulat_v summon_v he_o to_o a_o account_n soon_o then_o be_v imagine_v whether_o he_o repent_v or_o despair_v at_o his_o death_n be_v uncertain_a some_o say_v his_o last_o word_n be_v omne_fw-la perdidimus_fw-la all_o be_v lose_v in_o his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n he_o name_v 16._o tutor_n for_o his_o son_n to_o govern_v during_o his_o minority_n with_o equal_a authority_n charge_v they_o not_o to_o bring_v in_o the_o sacramentarian_a religion_n but_o god_n permit_v his_o will_n to_o be_v break_v before_o his_o body_n be_v bury_v who_o have_v change_v the_o last_o will_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o decease_a and_o that_o but_o three_o day_n after_o his_o death_n for_o upon_o the_o 1._o of_o february_n seamor_n earl_n of_o hartford_n brother_n to_o ed._n 6._o mother_n be_v make_v protector_n of_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n by_o his_o own_o ambition_n and_o private_a authority_n of_o his_o faction_n which_o prevail_v among_o the_o 16._o executor_n without_o expect_v any_o parliament_n or_o consent_v to_o the_o realm_n for_o so_o great_a a_o charge_n or_o for_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n which_o immediate_o follow_v and_o because_o wriothesly_a earl_n of_o southampton_n lord_n chancellor_n the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n and_o bishop_n tonstall_n and_o some_o other_o will_v not_o betray_v their_o trust_n and_o oppose_v the_o new_a reformation_n they_o be_v disgrace_v and_o displace_v subsect_n i._o of_o the_o english_a religion_n and_o reformer_n in_o king_n edward_n vi_o reign_n the_o earl_n of_o hartford_n new_o create_v duke_n of_o somerset_n and_o lord_n protector_n of_o england_n be_v a_o man_n fit_a to_o be_v govern_v then_o to_o govern_v his_o judgement_n be_v weak_a but_o himself_o very_o wilful_a and_o so_o blind_o resolut_a in_o command_v and_o execute_v the_o design_n of_o other_o by_o who_o he_o be_v guide_v that_o without_o perceive_v it_o he_o be_v make_v the_o instrument_n of_o his_o own_o ruin_n as_o well_o as_o of_o his_o brother_n and_o of_o the_o young_a king_n also_o by_o the_o change_n of_o the_o ancient_a religion_n dudley_n earl_n of_o warwick_n be_v his_o director_n both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n affair_n and_o yet_o be_v his_o great_a enemy_n which_o somerset_n have_v not_o the_o wit_n to_o see_v though_o all_o the_o world_n know_v he_o to_o be_v his_o competitor_n and_o albeit_o dudley_n have_v be_v always_o a_o roman_n catholic_n in_o his_o judgement_n yet_o as_o most_o politician_n do_v he_o dissemble_v his_o belief_n and_o yet_o ●oothed_v the_o protector_n in_o his_o inclination_n to_o the_o protestant_n reformation_n not_o doubt_v but_o that_o have_v once_o intoxicated_a the_o people_n with_o the_o liberty_n and_o inconstancy_n thereof_o he_o may_v lead_v they_o from_o the_o contempt_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n to_o rebel_v against_o the_o temporal_a and_o humour_n so_o well_o their_o mad_a zeal_n that_o for_o their_o new_a ghospel_n preservation_n and_o propagation_n they_o will_v fix_v upon_o he_o for_o their_o director_n and_o stick_v to_o who_o he_o will_v appoint_v for_o their_o sovereign_n he_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o his_o expectation_n the_o protector_n seamour_n be_v destroy_v dudley_n himself_o make_v chief_a minister_n of_o england_n the_o king_n poison_v the_o princess_n mary_n exclude_v the_o lady_n jane_n grace_n declare_v queen_n because_o she_o be_v a_o protestant_n and_o marry_v to_o dudlys_n son_n all_o which_o thing_n he_o compase_v in_o a_o short_a time_n though_o by_o degree_n as_o you_o shall_v hear_v no_o soon_o be_v k._n henry_n 8._o dead_a but_o dudley_n earl_n of_o warwick_n advise_v somerset_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o protectorship_n and_o to_o make_v he_o odious_a by_o his_o private_a authority_n to_o alter_v the_o public_a profession_n of_o faith_n and_o because_o he_o know_v so_o notorious_a a_o fraud_n can_v not_o be_v effect_v without_o force_n he_o devise_v with_o the_o protector_n the_o journey_n of_o musselborough_n field_n and_o the_o war_n of_o scotland_n under_o pretence_n of_o gain_v by_o force_n the_o young_a queen_n of_o scot_n to_o marry_v k._n edward_n 6._o but_o in_o reality_n to_o get_v the_o power_n of_o the_o militia_n into_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o thereby_o to_o settle_v in_o england_n a_o religion_n whereby_o he_o may_v in_o due_a time_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o a_o refine_a reformation_n unsettle_v the_o government_n and_o alter_v k._n henry_n 8._o testament_n and_o persuade_v england_n that_o his_o daughter_n marys_n reign_n will_v eclipse_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o then_o begin_v to_o shine_v after_o that_o he_o have_v make_v the_o protector_n so_o odious_a that_o none_o can_v endure_v to_o hear_v his_o name_n or_o to_o live_v under_o his_o government_n he_o think_v it_o a_o proper_a time_n to_o establish_v by_o parliament_n that_o new_a profession_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o know_v can_v not_o be_v effect_v without_o the_o consent_n and_o concurrence_n of_o that_o great_a assembly_n and_o though_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o absurdity_n contain_v in_o the_o best_a of_o the_o new_a reformation_n yet_o because_o since_o the_o setlement_n of_o the_o spiritual_a headship_n of_o our_o king_n he_o perceive_v the_o common_a people_n may_v be_v lead_v any_o way_n and_o that_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v hold_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o believe_v the_o ancient_a christian_a religion_n be_v profane_a and_o that_o any_o protestant_n reformation_n be_v the_o primitive_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n he_o wrought_v so_o much_o by_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o army_n and_o the_o king_n authority_n that_o albeit_o in_o the_o first_o parliament_n and_o year_n of_o edward_n 6._o reign_n nothing_o more_o can_v be_v obtain_v in_o favour_n of_o protestancy_n but_o a_o indemnity_n for_o the_o preacher_n thereof_o from_o penalty_n enact_v by_o the_o ancient_a law_n against_o marry_a priest_n and_o heritick_n and_o a_o repeal_n of_o the_o english_a statute_n confirm_v the_o imperial_a edict_n against_o heresy_n yet_o in_o the_o second_o year_n and_o parliament_n of_o edward_n the_o vi_o it_o be_v carry_v though_o by_o few_o vote_n and_o after_o a_o long_a debate_n of_o above_o four_o month_n that_o the_o zuinglian_a or_o sacramentarian_a reformation_n shall_v be_v the_o religion_n of_o england_n england_n the_o charge_n of_o frame_v article_n of_o this_o religion_n as_o also_o of_o compose_v the_o liturgy_n and_o a_o book_n of_o rit_n ceremony_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n have_v be_v commit_v to_o
diximus_fw-la tali_fw-la lege_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la hic_fw-la damus_fw-la anno_fw-la aetatis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la quadragesimo_fw-la secundo_fw-la propendeant_n eye_v quae_fw-la quadragesimo_fw-la dederamus_fw-la quando_fw-la ut_fw-la diximus_fw-la tempori_fw-la potius_fw-la scripsimus_fw-la quam_fw-la rei_fw-la sic_fw-la jubente_fw-la domino_fw-la ut_fw-la tali_fw-la ratione_fw-la aedificemus_fw-la ne_fw-la inter_fw-la initia_fw-la cane_n &_o porci_fw-la nos_fw-la rumpant_fw-la he_o have_v no_o great_a opinion_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o his_o alter_v the_o very_a text_n of_o scripture_n contrary_n to_o all_o copy_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a and_o by_o his_o say_n that_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o attribute_v so_o much_o to_o his_o own_o epistle_n as_o to_o think_v that_o all_o therein_o contain_v be_v sacred_a for_o that_o be_v to_o impute_v immoderate_a arrogancy_n to_o the_o apostle_n tom_n 2._o elench_v contra_fw-la catabaptistas_n fol._n 10._o and_o because_o the_o other_o canton_n of_o the_o suitzer_n will_v not_o accept_v of_o this_o reformation_n he_o stick_v to_o the_o principle_n thereof_o endeavour_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n to_o bring_v they_o under_o subjection_n and_o to_o his_o own_o gospel_n and_o in_o this_o attempt_n zuinglius_fw-la be_v kill_v seal_v with_o his_o blood_n what_o he_o have_v write_v tom_n 1._o in_o explanat_fw-la be_v 42._o fol._n 84._o that_o king_n and_o magistrate_n may_v be_v depose_v when_o they_o resist_v the_o gospel_n church_n that_o be_v any_o private_a protestant_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o the_o reformer_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n they_o be_v king_n henry_n 8._o thomas_n cranmer_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_z peter_z martyr_n hooper_n rogers_n ridley_n bucer_n okin_n the_o reviver_n be_v jewel_n parker_n horn_n etc._n etc._n of_o who_o life_n and_o conversation_n we_o have_v say_v something_o and_o enough_o to_o prove_v they_o be_v not_o fit_a man_n to_o reform_v christian_n religion_n their_o doctrine_n they_o borrow_v from_o luther_n and_o zwinglius_fw-la the_o supremacy_n only_o except_v which_o king_n henry_n 8._o invent_v and_o therefore_o bishop_n jewel_n the_o chief_a maintainer_n both_o of_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n and_o prelatic_a character_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n edit_n 1571._o pag._n 426._o as_o also_o in_o the_o apology_n part_n 4._o c._n 4._o think_v it_o necessary_a for_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o english_a religion_n which_o have_v be_v compile_v out_o of_o luther_n and_o zwinglius_fw-la write_n to_o commend_v those_o two_o pillar_n of_o protestancy_n as_o most_o excellent_a man_n even_o send_v by_o god_n to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o darkness_n when_o the_o truth_n be_v unknown_a and_o unheard_a of_o as_o for_o b._n p_o jewel_n him-self_n we_o remit_v the_o reader_n to_o doctor_n harding_n confutation_n of_o the_o apology_n wherein_o he_o may_v clear_o discern_v the_o false_a lustre_n of_o this_o counterfeit_a jewel_n and_o the_o value_n which_o man_n ought_v to_o set_v upon_o this_o precious_a stone_n lay_v for_o a_o foundation_n of_o the_o prelatic_a church_n and_o upon_o the_o rot_a stuff_n which_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n have_v sell_v for_o divine_a truth_n to_o english_a protestant_n ever_n since_o he_o undertake_v elizabeth_n to_o maintain_v their_o cause_n for_o as_o doctor_n heylin_n ingenious_o acknowledge_v in_o his_o ecclesia_fw-la restaurata_fw-la all_o the_o learned_a english_a protestant_n writer_n have_v borrow_v from_o b._n p_o jewel_n what_o they_o have_v say_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o that_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o their_o work_n be_v so_o full_a of_o manifest_a untruth_n and_o them-selve_n so_o frequent_o convict_v of_o gross_a mistake_n they_o rely_v too_o much_o upon_o this_o reviver_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o at_o least_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o he_o may_v be_v rely_v upon_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o doctor_n heylin_n make_v it_o his_o business_n to_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o jevel_n then_o do_v make_v good_a the_o character_n and_o ordinary_a vocation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o harding_n and_o that_o doctor_n bramhall_n late_a protestant_a primate_n of_o ireland_n triumph_v over_o the_o suppose_a jesuit_n who_o renew_v harding_n quarrel_n i_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o clear_v both_o these_o mistake_v in_o few_o word_n as_o for_o bishop_n jewel_n we_o have_v say_v in_o the_o 1._o part_n sect_n 7._o of_o this_o treatise_n how_o easy_o he_o may_v have_v stop_v harding_n mouth_n by_o only_o name_v the_o bishop_n who_o consecrate_v parker_n and_o his_o comrade_n for_o harding_n use_v no_o other_o argument_n against_o the_o nullity_n of_o the_o english_a protestant_a clergy_n but_o this_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v ordain_v by_o a_o other_o bishop_n but_o parker_n and_o his_o comrade_n be_v not_o ordain_v bishop_n by_o any_o other_o bishop_n ergo._fw-la his_o proof_n that_o they_o be_v not_o ordain_v by_o any_o bishop_n be_v this_o name_v the_o bishop_n that_o ordain_v they_o name_v the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v consecrate_v this_o be_v a_o demand_n soon_o satisfy_v if_o ever_o parker_n or_o his_o fellow_n have_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n especial_o with_o so_o much_o ceremony_n and_o solemnity_n as_o the_o new_a record_n of_o lambeth_n report_v that_o matter_n yet_o jewel_n can_v never_o name_v parker_n and_o the_o first_o protestant_a bishop_n consecrator_n he_o name_v indeed_o parker_n for_o his_o own_o consecrator_n but_o be_v press_v by_o harding_n to_o name_n parker_n instead_o of_o answer_v harding_n question_n whereupon_o depend_v the_o whole_a controversy_n the_o credit_n of_o his_o clergy_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o reader_n he_o make_v a_o impertinent_a digression_n and_o long_a discourse_n of_o the_o obligation_n which_o some_o pretend_a to_o have_v be_v in_o ancient_a time_n of_o consult_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o they_o proceed_v to_o the_o election_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n but_o never_o return_v to_o the_o point_n of_o name_v the_o first_o protestant_a bishop_n consecrator_n who_o he_o will_v have_v name_v to_o harding_n if_o ever_o they_o have_v be_v consecrate_v and_o this_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o great_a victory_n which_o doctor_n heylin_n so_o much_o brag_n of_o the_o other_o part_n concern_v bramhall_n and_o the_o suppose_a jesuit_n the_o true_a relation_n whereof_o be_v as_o follow_v after_o that_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o royal_a family_n have_v be_v drive_v out_o of_o england_n and_o france_n by_o the_o late_a usurp_a power_n and_o all_o christian_a prince_n think_v it_o their_o conveniency_n to_o court_v the_o rebel_n and_o not_o entertain_v in_o their_o dominion_n the_o person_n of_o our_o king_n much_o less_o embrace_v his_o quarrel_n it_o happen_v on_o day_n at_o bruges_n that_o doctor_n croud_a chaplain_n to_o his_o royal_a highness_n the_o duke_n of_o york_n in_o his_o master_n chamber_n and_o presence_n without_o any_o provocation_n or_o occasion_n give_v by_o any_o of_o the_o roman_a profession_n utter_v very_o intemperate_a word_n against_o doctor_n goff_n almoner_n to_o the_o queen_n mother_n for_o have_v take_v order_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n after_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o which_o a_o catholic_n gentleman_n answer_v he_o have_v do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o all_o other_o protestant_a minister_n who_o become_v roman_a priest_n have_v continual_o practise_v and_o as_o he_o believe_v upon_o good_a ground_n whereupon_o the_o doctor_n notwithstanding_o the_o king_n be_v come_v to_o his_o brother_n chamber_n reassume_v his_o argument_n and_o continue_v to_o dispute_v with_o such_o vehemency_n that_o be_v call_v to_o read_v morning_n prayer_n he_o mistake_v the_o time_n of_o the_o day_n and_o in_o the_o morning_n read_v evening_n prayer_n to_o the_o congregation_n the_o cause_n of_o his_o mistake_n be_v know_v and_o many_o believe_v that_o his_o excess_n of_o choler_n argue_v a_o weakness_n in_o his_o cause_n doctor_n bramhall_n late_a primate_n of_o ireland_n write_v a_o treatise_n in_o vindication_n of_o the_o english_a clergys_n character_n which_o be_v the_o book_n so_o much_o applaud_v by_o the_o prelaticks_n and_o by_o doctor_n heylin_n as_o unanswerable_a whereas_o it_o be_v sudden_o and_o so_o substantial_o answer_v that_o primate_n bramhall_n never_o dare_v reply_n notwithstanding_o the_o general_n concern_v of_o his_o clergy_n and_o his_o own_o particular_a engagement_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n perceive_v the_o evidence_n of_o our_o argument_n against_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o form_n of_o ordination_n clergy_n think_v their_o best_a answer_n be_v to_o confess_v the_o force_n of_o our_o reason_n and_o correct_v the_o error_n of_o their_o bishop_n by_o change_v the_o form_n they_o have_v compose_v of_o priesthood_n and_o episcopacy_n
fallaise_n in_o so_o much_o as_o she_o persuade_v her_o husband_n to_o leave_v geneva_n and_o go_v to_o lansan●●_n where_o she_o reveal_v the_o whole_a matter_n mahomet_n it_o be_v true_a be_v a_o cheat_n but_o a_o mere_a cunning_a cheat_n then_o luther_n calvin_n or_o cranmer_n etc._n etc._n for_o by_o his_o dove_n or_o fit_v of_o the_o fall_a sickness_n he_o make_v people_n believe_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v and_o inspire_v to_o he_o the_o alcoran_n but_o the_o protestant_a reformer_n have_v not_o so_o much_o to_o show_v for_o their_o new_a doctrine_n canon_n translation_n and_o their_o new_a sense_n of_o scripture_n mahomet_n be_v constant_a to_o his_o principle_n the_o protestant_a parliament_n and_o reformer_n be_v as_o changeable_a as_o the_o time_n and_o humour_n of_o the_o giddy_a people_n and_o therefore_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n than_o the_o turk_n give_v the_o moon_n crescent_a for_o the_o crest_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o catholic_n do_v the_o cross._n here_o in_o england_n they_o change_v with_o henry_n 8._o the_o roman_a faith_n for_o article_n of_o religion_n devise_v by_o the_o king_n majesty_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o die_v they_o change_v that_o faith_n into_o zuinglianism_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o protector_n somerset_n within_o two_o or_o three_o year_n after_o they_o change_v zuinglianism_n into_o calvinianism_n at_o the_o suit_n of_o calvin_n and_o reform_v the_o liturgy_n according_o after_o k._n edward_n 6._o death_n they_o return_v with_o q._n mary_n to_o the_o old_a faith_n with_o q._n elizabeth_n they_o restore_v the_o new_a but_o with_o some_o alteration_n when_o k._n james_n succeed_v they_o change_v their_o translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o other_o thing_n in_o k._n charles_n 1._o time_n prelatic_a protestancy_n be_v pull_v down_o by_o presbytery_n this_o by_o independency_n etc._n etc._n prelatic_a protestancy_n be_v restore_v again_o by_o k._n charles_n 2._o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n whereupon_o depend_v the_o validity_n of_o the_o prelatic_a ministry_n church_n and_o sacrament_n be_v not_o think_v sufficient_a and_o therefore_o be_v now_o change_v into_o more_o catholic_n form_n and_o thereby_o all_o be_v leave_v doubtful_a and_o changeable_a for_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n acknowledge_v to_o have_v err_v in_o a_o thing_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n what_o assurance_n can_v it_o have_v of_o not_o err_v in_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o a_o word_n protestant_n in_o this_o one_o kingdom_n and_o in_o this_o one_o age_n have_v make_v mo●●_n change_v of_o religion_n than_o mahometan_n in_o the_o ten_o age_n they_o have_v continue_v and_o in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n which_o they_o have_v conquer_v these_o thing_n mature_o consider_v make_v mahometism_n as_o probable_a a_o religion_n as_o the_o best_a kind_n of_o protestancy_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v be_v no_o great_a wonder_n if_o they_o who_o believe_v the_o protestant_n and_o prelatic_a clergy_n and_o take_v their_o word_n and_o fancy_n for_o true_a scripture_n and_o christianity_n shall_v alter_v their_o belief_n upon_o the_o change_n of_o that_o clergys_n testimony_n acknowledge_v that_o hitherto_o they_o have_v be_v mistake_v which_o they_o may_v confess_v at_o any_o time_n because_o their_o church_n be_v acknowledge_v fallible_a and_o that_o now_o they_o find_v the_o turk_n have_v the_o true_a faith_n for_o that_o they_o reject_v all_o such_o book_n of_o scripture_n as_o any_o christian_n ever_o doubt_v of_o and_o that_o as_o lawful_o as_o the_o pretend_a apocrypha_n be_v reject_v by_o protestant_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n and_o likewise_o believe_v all_o protestant_n fundamental_a point_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n 11._o see_v they_o believe_v of_o christ_n as_o much_o as_o arian_n socinian_o and_o chillingworth_n with_o his_o sect_n of_o wit_n nay_o as_o much_o as_o the_o moderate_a and_o modern_a prelatic_a writer_n who_o say_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o believe_v christ_n be_v the_o word_n and_o son_n of_o god_n which_o mahomet_n never_o deny_v if_o any_o mahometan_a prince_n can_v pretend_v a_o title_n to_o this_o british_a monarchy_n with_o probability_n of_o prevail_a why_o may_v not_o we_o think_v he_o will_v find_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n as_o ready_a to_o comply_v with_o his_o religion_n thereby_o to_o secure_v their_o own_o and_o promote_v his_o interest_n as_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o change_v the_o catholic_n and_o legal_a religion_n which_o be_v profess_v in_o q._n mary_n time_n for_o comply_v with_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o fortify_v her_o weak_a title_n against_o the_o legitimat_fw-la and_o undoubted_a heir_n all_o thing_n weigh_v there_o be_v less_o difference_n between_o mahumetism_n and_o prelatic_a protestancy_n then_o between_o prelatic_a protestancy_n and_o popery_n for_o that_o popery_n and_o protestancy_n agree_v only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o motive_n and_o manner_n of_o faith_n they_o differ_v and_o in_o the_o ground_n thereof_o as_o also_o in_o the_o canon_n letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o mahumetism_n and_o protestancy_n though_o they_o agree_v not_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n protestant_n admit_v into_o their_o canon_n more_o book_n thereof_o then_o the_o turk_n yet_o they_o both_o agree_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o religion_n though_o not_o in_o the_o application_n as_o also_o in_o the_o rule_n whereby_o their_o canon_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v discern_v which_o be_v every_o man_n private_a judgement_n in_o controvert_v matter_n in_o that_o point_n which_o be_v not_o controvert_v to_o wit_n one_o deity_n the_o consent_n and_o concurrence_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o world_n or_o evident_a reason_n be_v the_o foundation_n as_o well_o of_o mahumetism_n as_o of_o protestancy_n as_o also_o in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul._n therefore_o i_o see_v no_o impossibility_n or_o improbability_n say_v this_o great_a wit_n why_o mahumetism_n may_v not_o in_o time_n be_v make_v the_o religion_n of_o these_o nation_n without_o violate_v the_o principle_n or_o alter_v the_o ground_n of_o protestancy_n and_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n be_v as_o much_o applaud_v protestancy_n and_o reward_v for_o the_o one_o change_v as_o for_o the_o other_o the_o great_a obstacle_n be_v that_o no_o mahometan_a prince_n can_v pretend_v a_o title_n even_o such_o as_o q._n elizabeth_n be_v to_o the_o crown_n god_n almighty_a deliver_v we_o from_o so_o great_a evil_n and_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o they_o that_o do_v not_o see_v the_o precipice_n whereunto_o their_o soul_n be_v lead_v by_o such_o principle_n and_o grant_v the_o learned_a prelatic_a clergy_n grace_n to_o prefer_v truth_n before_o falsehood_n conscience_n before_o conveniency_n and_o eternity_n before_o the_o few_o day_n which_o they_o be_v to_o enjoy_v benefice_n and_o bishopric_n but_o in_o case_n they_o do_v not_o for_o fear_n of_o lose_v their_o credit_n and_o convenience_n recant_v their_o error_n i_o hope_v the_o protestant_a laity_n will_v have_v so_o much_o curiosity_n as_o to_o examine_v whether_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o so_o many_o catholic_n author_n as_o have_v write_v book_n of_o controversy_n shall_v damn_v and_o discredit_v themselves_o by_o forge_v and_o feign_v protestant_n fraud_n and_o falsification_n quote_v the_o very_a place_n and_o page_n where_o they_o be_v to_o be_v find_v affirm_v that_o without_o such_o practice_n protestancy_n can_v be_v maintain_v to_o examine_v i_o say_v whether_o we_o catholic_n can_v be_v so_o wicked_a and_o witless_a as_o to_o accuse_v man_n of_o such_o grievous_a crime_n without_o hope_n of_o any_o honour_n or_o profit_n to_o ourselves_o but_o rather_o with_o a_o certainty_n of_o a_o immediate_a discovery_n of_o our_o imposture_n if_o this_o one_o thing_n be_v mature_o consider_v the_o protestant_a laity_n and_o their_o unlearned_a clergy_n that_o rely_v so_o much_o upon_o the_o sufficiency_n and_o sincerity_n of_o cranmer_n jewel_n fox_n morton_n andrews_n whitaker_n fulk_n perkins_n usher_n laud_n abbot_n chillingworth_n bramhall_n cousin_n hamond_n taylor_n etc._n etc._n will_v believe_v we_o or_o at_o least_o examine_v and_o certain_o find_v most_o palpable_a unexcusable_a corruption_n and_o contradiction_n in_o every_o one_o of_o their_o own_o author_n book_n compose_v against_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n and_o conclude_v with_o we_o that_o piety_n and_o policy_n be_v mistake_v in_o promote_a protestancy_n and_o persecute_v popery_n and_o that_o a_o good_a revenue_n may_v be_v conscientious_o settle_v if_o lega_o demand_v upon_o the_o crown_n and_o upon_o the_o poor_a soldier_n and_o seaman_n that_o defend_v these_o nation_n against_o foreign_a invasion_n and_o rebellious_a insurrection_n see_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o roman_a catholic_n clergy_n in_o all_o likelihood_n will_v be_v content_a to_o resign_v their_o right_n and_o interest_n in_o the_o church_n revenue_n to_o his_o majesty_n as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o like_a occasion_n to_o q._n marry_o who_o notwithstanding_o
a_o treatise_n of_o religion_n and_o government_n with_o reflection_n upon_o the_o cause_n and_o cure_n of_o england_n late_a distemper_n and_o present_a danger_n the_o argument_n whether_o protestancy_n be_v less_o dangerous_a to_o the_o soul_n or_o more_o advantageous_a to_o the_o state_n than_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n the_o conclusion_n that_o piety_n and_o policy_n be_v mistake_v in_o promote_a protestancy_n and_o persecute_v popery_n by_o penal_a and_o sanguinary_a statute_n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la an_fw-mi dom_n m.dc.lxx_o to_o the_o most_o illustrious_a prince_z the_o duke_n of_o buqvingham_n etc._n etc._n may_v it_o please_v your_o grace_n the_o inconsiderate_a censure_n of_o half_a witted_a critik_n have_v canonize_v the_o custom_n of_o dedicate_a book_n to_o great_a person_n at_o least_o they_o have_v so_o extenuate_v the_o crime_n that_o i_o despair_v not_o to_o obtain_v your_o grace_n pardon_v for_o my_o presumption_n of_o prefix_v your_o name_n to_o this_o treatise_n without_o your_o consent_n or_o knowledge_n but_o if_o the_o general_a custom_n be_v not_o a_o lawful_a excuse_n for_o my_o ambitious_a solicitation_n of_o your_o grace_n patronage_n i_o must_v transfer_v the_o fault_n from_o myself_o the_o author_n and_o lay_v it_o on_o the_o argument_n of_o my_o book_n which_o be_v so_o proper_a for_o a_o person_n of_o your_o grace_n high_a birth_n profound_a judgement_n and_o public_a trust_n thus_o without_o violence_n to_o the_o work_n it_o can_v hardly_o be_v offer_v to_o any_o other_o the_o argument_n my_o lord_n of_o this_o book_n be_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n which_o be_v the_o most_o reasonable_a o●_n all_o liberty_n it_o be_v the_o spiritual_a birthright_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o only_a human_a prerogative_n that_o can_v be_v force_v or_o forfeit_v though_o ourselves_o be_v slave_n our_o thought_n be_v free_a and_o so_o much_o our_o own_o that_o none_o but_o the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n can_v know_v they_o god_n himself_o do_v not_o use_v violence_n against_o our_o opinion_n when_o he_o command_v we_o ●o_o change_v they_o he_o do_v not_o compel_v we_o by_o rigour_n and_o penalty_n but_o convince_v we_o by_o reason_n and_o miracle_n my_o lord_n prince_n be_v call_v god_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o ought_v to_o imitat_fw-la divin_fw-fr per●●●tions_n how_o much_o your_o grace_n do_v excel_v in_o this_o perfection_n of_o be_v aver_v from_o compel_a man_n conscience_n be_v so_o notorious_a that_o any_o man_n may_v without_o flattery_n the_o common_a vice_n of_o epistle_n dedicatory_a publish_v and_o print_v your_o virtue_n in_o this_o one_o of_o patronise_a liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v so_o many_o comprehend_v that_o do_v i_o undertake_v to_o enumerat_v and_o explain_v they_o this_o short_a epistle_n must_v have_v be_v a_o vast_a volume_n it_o be_v a_o eminent_a part_n of_o religion_n to_o propagat_n and_o persuade_v it_o by_o reason_n its_o charity_n to_o consider_v and_o commi●erat_v other_o man_n capacity_n how_o capricious_a soever_o 〈◊〉_d prudence_n to_o proportion_v the_o law_n to_o tender_a conscience_n on_o the_o contrary_a the_o zeal_n of_o persecution_n be_v but_o a_o cloak_n of_o ambition_n for_o man_n of_o one_o persuasion_n to_o exclude_v all_o other●_n from_o place_n of_o profit_n trust_v and_o honour_n whereof_o the_o zealot_n will_v never_o be_v think_v worthy_a if_o such_o as_o the_o penal_a law_n exclude_v do_v conform_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o when_o any_o one_o do_v become_v a_o conformist_n none_o be_v more_o sorry_a for_o his_o conversion_n than_o they_o that_o pretend_v to_o design_n and_o effect_v it_o by_o persecution_n because_o the_o number_n of_o proselits_n do_v diminish_v the_o profit_n and_o destroy_v the_o project_n they_o have_v of_o beg_a recusant_n fine_n and_o forfeiture_n your_o genius_n and_o generosity_n my_o lord_n be_v so_o much_o above_o these_o base_a and_o destructive_a way_n that_o you_o be_v become_v the_o refuge_n of_o all_o person_n afflict_v for_o their_o conscience_n to_o be_v popular_a upon_o this_o score_n and_o to_o be_v the_o patron_n of_o so_o numerous_a and_o conscientious_a a_o party_n as_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o your_o wisdom_n and_o virtue_n so_o it_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n for_o your_o prudent_a prince_n to_o confide_v in_o your_o ministry_n and_o to_o countenance_v your_o popularity_n i_o do_v acknowledge_v my_o lord_n that_o in_o some_o district_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n man_n be_v punish_v for_o their_o conscience_n or_o contumacy_n by_o a_o court_n of_o justice_n call_v the_o inquisition_n how_o worthy_a the_o inquisition_n be_v of_o imitation_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o but_o this_o i_o do_v maintain_v in_o my_o book_n that_o our_o penal_a and_o sanguinary_a statute_n be_v much_o more_o severe_a and_o unreasonable_a than_o the_o canon_n law_n whereupon_o the_o inquisitor_n sentence_n be_v ground_v 1._o because_o the_o canon_n against_o innovator_n of_o religion_n be_v almost_o as_o ancient_a as_o constantin_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n 2._o they_o seem_v so_o conscientious_a and_o convenient_a to_o all_o his_o catholic_n successor_n and_o other_o sovereign_n that_o they_o have_v incorporate_v into_o the_o law_n of_o their_o dominion_n the_o canon_n whereby_o the_o inquisitor_n be_v direct_v to_o punish_v heresy_n or_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n in_o england_n dare_v not_o publish_v their_o doctrine_n until_o these_o statute_n against_o heretic_n have_v be_v repeal_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n 1._o edu_n 6.3_o the_o inquisitor_n pretend_v not_o to_o act_v by_o human_a commission_n against_o man_n opinion_n they_o proceed_v as_o spiritual_a pastor_n and_o the_o apostle_n successor_n and_o therefore_o endeavour_v to_o reduce_v the_o obstinate_a nonconformist_n by_o produce_v thousand_o of_o learned_a and_o lawful_a witness_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o very_a same_o apostolical_a revelation_n reason_n and_o miracle_n whereby_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_n world_n have_v be_v convert_v from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n but_o our_o english_a penal_a and_o sanguinary_a statute_n punish_v man_n for_o adhere_v to_o the_o ancient_a and_o authentic_a religion_n of_o christendom_n and_o for_o not_o embrace_v a_o new_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o credible_a testimony_n or_o proof_n that_o it_o be_v the_o apostolical_a neither_o be_v there_o as_o much_o as_o a_o pretence_n of_o any_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v protestancy_n or_o that_o monstrous_a shee-supremacy_n which_o be_v impose_v upon_o man_n only_o to_o make_v a_o bullen_n daughter_n queen_n of_o england_n and_o to_o exclude_v the_o right_a heir_n and_o now_o reign_v family_n from_o the_o crown_n notwithstanding_o this_o great_a disparity_n my_o lord_n between_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o inquisition_n and_o of_o our_o penal_a statute_n i_o wish_v both_o equal_o exclude_v from_o this_o monarchy_n and_o that_o no_o compulsion_n be_v use_v against_o conscience_n but_o that_o every_o one_o be_v leave_v to_o choo_n his_o own_o religion_n according_a to_o his_o capacity_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o none_o will_v have_v a_o great_a care_n of_o save_v any_o man_n soul_n than_o himself_o who_o be_v more_o concern_v therein_o than_o any_o other_o whether_o prince_n parliament_z or_o pastor_n that_o god_n may_v inspire_v into_o every_o soul_n that_o one_o faith_n without_o which_o none_o be_v save_v aught_o to_o be_v the_o only_a common_a prayer_n impose_v upon_o we_o for_o that_o by_o this_o uniformity_n of_o prayer_n every_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o his_o own_o inquisition_n which_o be_v much_o more_o agreeable_a to_o our_o genius_n then_o that_o of_o spain_n and_o more_o likely_a to_o make_v we_o agree_v among_o ourselves_o than_o any_o penal_a or_o sanguinary_a statute_n all_o which_o i_o humble_o submit_v to_o your_o grace_n judgement_n beg_v your_o pardon_n for_o this_o trouble_n and_o your_o protection_n for_o this_o treatise_n your_o grace_n most_o obedient_a and_o most_o humble_a servant_n john_n wilson_n the_o preface_n the_o end_n which_o most_o author_n propose_v to_o themselves_o in_o write_v preface_n be_v to_o incline_v m●n_z to_o read_v their_o book_n but_o the_o book_n be_v now_o so_o many_o and_o of_o such_o groat_n busk_n that_o even_o the_o preface_n be_v not_o peruse_v notwithstanding_o this_o superfluity_n and_o surfeit_n of_o book_n i_o have_v venture_v to_o add_v this_o one_o to_o the_o number_n not_o without_o hope_n that_o the_o title_n will_v invite_v man_n to_o read_v the_o preface_n and_o perhaps_o the_o preface_n may_v persuade_v they_o to_o read_v the_o book_n for_o religion_n and_o government_n be_v the_o two_o thing_n wherein_o mankind_n be_v most_o concern_v the_o one_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n the_o other_o of_o temporal_a prosperity_n and_o i_o have_v undertake_v to_o
direct_v man_n to_o the_o best_a religion_n whereof_o depend_v the_o best_a government_n the_o conscience_n of_o some_o and_o the_o curiosity_n of_o other_o will_v furnish_v i_o with_o reader_n some_o railer_n i_o must_v expect_v to_o have_v because_o i_o endeavour_v to_o demonstrat_fw-la that_o the_o crown_n may_v lawful_o seize_v on_o the_o church_n revenue_n but_o i_o be_o content_a to_o b●●●ld_v at_o so_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v not_o rally_v out_o of_o so_o necessary_a a_o support_n and_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v think_v too_o partial_a ●o_o my_o own_o religion_n i_o desire_v but_o a_o toleration_n for_o it_o as_o i_o do_v for_o all_o other_o christian_a profession●_n albeit_o to_o obtain_v this_o toleration_n for_o the_o catholic_n i_o be_o force_v to_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o protestant_n and_o to_o prove_v th●●_n no_o religion_n be_v so_o conscientious_a or_o so_o convenient_a as_o the_o roman_a the_o truth_n of_o this_o may_v ●●●ily_o be_v discern_v by_o a_o comit●e_n of_o the_o laity_n if_o public_a conference_n of_o religion_n be_v permit_v in_o english_a and_o true_o 〈…〉_z scripture_n be_v permit_v to_o be_v read_v and_o interpret_v by_o every_o english_a lay_v man_n i_o se●_n not_o why_o the_o laity_n may_v not_o judge_v of_o controversy_n and_o confer●●ces_n of_o religion_n and_o according_a 〈◊〉_d they_o find_v the_o interpretation_n of_o every_o congregation_n consistent_a with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n grant_v or_o not_o grant_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n there_o be_v few_o who_o 〈…〉_z often_o hear_v how_o press_o a●●●ertinently_o some_o of_o the_o wise_a member_n of_o parliament_n have_v speak_v for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n in_o the_o late_a session_n how_o they_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o our_o decay_n of_o trade_n and_o our_o fall_n of_o rent_n whereof_o merchant_n and_o landlord_n do_v so_o much_o complain_v be_v whole_o occasion_v by_o the_o severity_n of_o our_o law_n against_o recusant_n and_o nonconformist_n for_o what_o credit_n or_o security_n can_v merchant_n or_o tradesman_n have_v in_o england_n when_o their_o stock_n and_o substance_n may_v be_v lega_o confiscate_v whensoever_o they_o refuse_v to_o take_v a_o oath_n or_o frequent_v a_o church_n contrary_a to_o their_o conscience_n what_o commerce_n or_o correspondence_n can_v we_o expect_v from_o beyond_o the_o sea_n when_o he_o that_o this_o day_n be_v a_o able_a banker_n among_o we_o to_o morrow_n must_v turn_v bankrupt_a if_o he_o will_v not_o contrefait_v himself_o a_o conformist_n the_o tenant_n cattle_n and_o corn_n may_v be_v seize_v upon_o and_o by_o consequence_n the_o landlord_n deprive_v of_o his_o revenue_n whensoever_o a_o ceremonious_a parson_n or_o a_o officious_a churchwarden_n or_o a_o malicious_a neighbour_n will_v inform_v that_o they_o come_v not_o to_o the_o common_a prayer_n or_o communion_n so_o that_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v two_o part_n of_o england_n in_o a_o few_o year_n two_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n will_v be_v destroy_v if_o our_o penal_a statute_n against_o nonconformist_n do_v make_v this_o monarchy_n as_o peaceable_a as_o they_o make_v it_o poor_a perhaps_o some_o politician_n may_v think_v it_o advisable_v to_o continue_v they_o but_o see_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o govern_v a_o empoverish_v multitude_n without_o a_o stand_a army_n which_o england_n will_v hardly_o brook_v and_o that_o religion_n persecute_v make_v rebellion_n plausible_a all_o disinterest_v person_n may_v with_o reason_n admire_v that_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o do_v not_o press_n and_o pray_v for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n for_o though_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o shortsighted_a as_o not_o to_o foresee_v future_a inconvenience_n yet_o they_o can_v be_v so_o insensible_a as_o to_o forget_v the_o former_a effect_n of_o persecution_n and_o they_o will_v find_v great_a difficulty_n in_o persuade_v even_o the_o most_o devote_a to_o their_o own_o call_n that_o the_o same_o cause_n will_v not_o produce_v in_o 70._o the_o same_o effect_n we_o have_v feel_v since_o 40._o if_o they_o imagine_v that_o their_o spiritual_a censure_n will_v prevail_v against_o the_o temporal_a power_n of_o a_o discontent_a multitude_n they_o must_v maintain_v contrary_a to_o late_a experience_n that_o god_n will_v work_v miracle_n to_o support_v the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o presbyterian_a sectary_n §_o as_o for_o the_o king_n restauration_n i_o confess_v it_o look_n like_o a_o miracle_n but_o why_o our_o english_a bishop_n shall_v attribute_v so_o great_a a_o blessing_n rather_o to_o god_n will_v of_o countenance_v their_o strange_a character_n then_o to_o his_o will_n of_o continue_v lawful_a monarchy_n or_o of_o manifest_v the_o late_a king_n innocency_n or_o of_o reward_v the_o constancy_n and_o of_o relieve_v the_o indignity_n of_o the_o cavalier_n party_n can_v never_o be_v understand_v by_o any_o that_o know_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o protestant_a episcopacy_n and_o how_o it_o be_v raise_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n rather_o to_o exclude_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o stevards_o from_o the_o crown_n then_o to_o establish_v a_o succession_n of_o true_a bishop_n in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v much_o more_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o his_o majesty_n restauration_n be_v decree_v by_o god_n in_o order_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o declaration_n at_o bredà_fw-la for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n then_o in_o order_n to_o the_o non-performance_n of_o so_o public_a and_o solemn_a a_o promise_n and_o albeit_o i_o can_v say_v that_o our_o desire_a peace_n will_v be_v so_o absolute_o secure_v by_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n in_o england_n as_o it_o be_v in_o other_o country_n by_o the_o tenet_n and_o uniformity_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n yet_o be_v it_o manifest_a that_o persecution_n for_o promote_a prelatic_a protestancy_n will_v rather_o increase_v our_o confusion_n then_o work_v our_o conversion_n not_o only_o because_o the_o non-conformists'_a be_v the_o more_o numerous_a party_n and_o by_o consequence_n can_v hardly_o be_v force_v to_o obey_v law_n against_o their_o consceince_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o very_a prelaticks_n that_o christian_n may_v be_v save_v though_o they_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n nay_o they_o must_v grant_v that_o such_o as_o do_v conform_v to_o its_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n may_v be_v damn_v for_o so_o do_v because_o it_o be_v a_o fallible_a and_o by_o consequence_n for_o aught_o they_o or_o any_o one_o know_v a_o false_a church_n that_o a_o church_n believe_v by_o the_o member_n thereof_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o the_o only_a way_n of_o salvation_n do_v persecute_v such_o as_o revolt_v from_o its_o faith_n and_o obedience_n be_v think_v by_o some_o a_o rational_a though_o by_o i_o a_o rigorous_a practise_v but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n or_o all_o christian_a congregation_n and_o by_o consequence_n itself_o have_v err_v or_o may_v err_v in_o doctrine_n shall_v persecute_v such_o as_o revolt_v from_o it_o or_o man_n of_o a_o contrary_a persuasion_n for_o have_v a_o strong_a faith_n ground_v upon_o christ_n promise_n of_o never_o forsake_v we_o and_o a_o better_a opinion_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o of_o their_o own_o church_n doctrine_n seem_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o of_o human_a prudence_n for_o whether_o the_o protestant_n sectary_n persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o private_a spirit_n infallibility_n or_o the_o roman_a catholic_n belief_n of_o their_o general_a counsel_n infallibility_n be_v true_a or_o false_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v or_o prove_v that_o any_o christian_n ought_v to_o be_v persecute_v by_o penal_a and_o sanguinary_a statute_n for_o not_o exchange_v that_o assurance_n of_o divine_a faith_n which_o themselves_o be_v persuade_v they_o have_v for_o a_o bare_a prelatic_a probability_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n or_o for_o a_o confess_a possibility_n of_o be_v mistake_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n see_v therefore_o of_o two_o evil_n the_o least_o ought_v to_o be_v choose_v and_o that_o if_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v a_o evil_a it_o be_v a_o less_o one_o then_o persecution_n because_o it_o will_v cause_v less_o danger_n and_o disturbance_n in_o the_o nation_n than_o law_n which_o force_v the_o prelatic_a probability_n and_o uniformity_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v against_o the_o rule_n as_o well_o of_o piety_n as_o of_o policy_n to_o continue_v the_o penal_a and_o sanguinary_a statute_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o confess_o fallible_a church_n of_o england_n and_o when_o i_o plead_v for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n in_o england_n for_o presbyterian_o and_o fanatic_n i_o hope_v it_o will_v not_o be_v ill_o take_v that_o i_o beg_v the_o same_o freedom_n and_o favour_n for_o roman_a catholic_n especial_o if_o i_o prove_v as_o i_o have_v undertake_v that_o our_o principle_n be_v not_o
catholic_n doctrine_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o safety_n of_o king_n and_o with_o civil_a society_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n pag._n 443_o bishop_n mortons_n falsification_n about_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o kill_v a_o tyrant_n pag._n 444_o bishop_n mortons_n falsification_n of_o catholic_n against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o prince_n and_o how_o he_o excuse_v himself_o by_o say_v he_o receive_v it_o from_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n pag._n 445_o mortons_n answer_n in_o which_o see_v a_o imposture_n continue_v against_o catholic_n by_o the_o whole_a convocation_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n in_o their_o synod_n hold_v anno_fw-la 1603._o pag._n 546_o the_o protestant_a falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o the_o canon-law_n do_v warrant_n deposition_n of_o king_n by_o the_o pope_n pag._n 447_o a_o protestant_a falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o catholic_n may_v cheat_v any_o excommunicate_v person_n of_o their_o lawful_a debt_n pag._n 449_o bishop_n mortons_n falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o catholic_n hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o murder_n and_o massacre_n protestant_n pag._n 451_o bishop_n morton_n falsification_n to_o assert_v the_o king_n supremacy_n pag._n 453_o ten_o falsification_n set_v down_o together_o by_o bishop_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v that_o pope_n can_v be_v depose_v nor_o be_v heretic_n pag._n 457_o primate_n bramhall_n falsification_n to_o prove_v that_o pope_n may_v and_o have_v decree_v heretical_a doctrine_n pag._n 458_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o reason_n and_o example_n that_o no_o religion_n be_v so_o little_a dangerous_a to_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o safety_n of_o king_n or_o so_o advantageous_a to_o the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o subject_n as_o the_o roman_a catholic_n notwithstanding_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n pag._n 459_o protestant_n can_v clear_v their_o religion_n from_o their_o doctrine_n and_o danger_n of_o depose_v sovereign_n and_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n pag._n 470_o that_o protestant_n can_v never_o prove_v any_o of_o the_o wilful_a falsification_n wherewith_o they_o charge_v roman_n catholic_n writer_n but_o themselves_o be_v convict_v of_o that_o crime_n wheresoever_o they_o attempt_v to_o make_v good_a their_o charge_n against_o we_o pag._n 473_o bellarmin_n accuse_v by_o sutcliff_n of_o falsify_v the_o general_n council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n pag._n 474_o how_o protestant_n be_v convict_v by_o bellarmin_n of_o hold_v twenty_o ancient_a condemn_a heresy_n and_o how_o sutcliff_n and_o bishop_n morton_n to_o clear_v they_o of_o six_o only_o fourteen_o seem_n they_o confess_v do_v falsify_v the_o father_n and_o catholic_n author_n about_o worship_v of_o image_n pag._n 476_o two_o pelagian_a heresy_n impute_v to_o protestant_n and_o how_o they_o falsify_v to_o clear_v themselves_o of_o the_o one_o and_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o other_o pag._n 477_o two_o novatian_a heresy_n impute_v to_o protestant_n the_o one_o answer_v with_o silence_n the_o other_o with_o falsify_v pag._n 478_o the_o manichean_a heresy_n against_o freewill_n impute_v to_o protestant_n and_o how_o pitiful_o answer_v by_o bishop_n morton_n pag._n 479._o how_o bishop_n morton_n answer_v to_o bellarmin_n imputation_n of_o arianism_n unto_o protestant_n pag._n 479._o how_o morton_n falsify_v and_o abuse_v bellarmine_n who_o impute_v the_o denial_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o protestant_n pag._n 480._o falsification_n object_v against_o cardinal_n baronius_n by_o mr._n sutcliff_n pag._n 483._o calumny_n and_o falsification_n of_o luther_n calvin_n archbishop_n laud_n and_o primate_n usher_n to_o discredit_v catholic_n religion_n against_o their_o own_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n pag._n 487._o of_o calvin_n calumny_n against_o catholic_n and_o their_o doctrine_n pag._n 488_o fraud_n falsification_n and_o calumny_n of_o primate_n usher_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n pag._n 491._o usher_n falsification_n against_o confession_n pag._n 492._o his_o falsification_n against_o absolution_n of_o sin_n pag._n 493._o against_o purgatory_n pag._n 494_o against_o worship_a saint_n and_o their_o relic_n pag._n 496_o against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n pag._n 499_o of_o archbishop_n laud'_v fraud_n and_o falsification_n how_o unsincere_o bishop_n laud_n will_v fain_o excuse_v the_o modern_a greek_a heresy_n concern_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pag._n 502_o how_o bishop_n laud_n abuses_n st._n augustine_n to_o make_v protestant_n believe_v that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v against_o scripture_n and_o evident_a reason_n pag._n 504_o vicentius_n lirinensis_n abuse_v by_o laud_n to_o prove_v the_o fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 507_o how_o bishop_n laud_n falsify_v occam_n to_o infringe_v st._n augustin_n authority_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n as_o well_o as_o in_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v force_v by_o his_o error_n to_o resolve_v the_o prelatic_a faith_n into_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o fanatic_n which_o he_o paliat_v under_o the_o name_n of_o grace_n and_o thereby_o warrant_v all_o rebellion_n against_o church_n and_o state_n pag._n 509_o divers_a fraud_n and_o falsification_n of_o bishop_n laud_n to_o defend_v that_o protestant_n be_v not_o schismatic_n pag._n 512_o whether_o it_o be_v piety_n or_o policy_n to_o permit_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n of_o these_o three_o kingdom_n to_o enjoy_v the_o church_n revenue_n for_o maintain_v by_o such_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n as_o hitherto_o have_v be_v allege_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o also_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v fallible_a and_o by_o consequence_n for_o all_o they_o know_v false_a and_o h●re_o the_o say_v revenue_n may_v be_v conscientious_o apply_v to_o the_o use_n and_o ease_n of_o the_o people_n without_o any_o danger_n of_o sacrilege_n or_o any_o disturbance_n to_o the_o government_n if_o a_o public_a trial_n of_o both_o clergy_n sincerity_n be_v allow_v and_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n grant_v pag._n 521_o the_o same_o further_o demonstrate_v and_o how_o by_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n or_o by_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o british_a monarchy_n will_v become_v the_o most_o considerable_a of_o all_o christendom_n peaceable_a at_o home_n and_o recover_v its_o right_n abroad_o how_o evident_o it_o be_v the_o mutual_a interest_n of_o spain_n and_o england_n to_o be_v in_o a_o perpetual_a league_n against_o france_n and_o how_o advantageous_a it_o be_v for_o spain_n to_o put_v flanders_n into_o english_a hand_n pag._n 534_o the_o king_n be_v right_a to_o france_n pag._n 544_o my_o lord_n of_o clarendin_n policy_n censure_v by_o all_o wise_a men._n pag._n 548._o part_n 4._o the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n in_o every_o particular_a wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n confirm_v by_o undeniable_a miracle_n that_o such_o miracle_n as_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o the_o canonization_n of_o saint_n be_v true_a miracle_n and_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o confirm_v can_v be_v reject_v without_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o god_n veracity_n and_o how_o every_o protestant_n do_v see_v true_a miracle_n though_o he_o do_v not_o reflect_v upon_o they_o in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n pag._n 553_o the_o miracle_n of_o st._n januarius_n of_o naples_n pag._n 555_o the_o famous_a and_o undeniable_a miracle_n of_o st._n francis_n xaverius_n wrought_v on_o the_o person_n of_o marcello_n mastrillo_n pag._n 556_o antichrist_n miracle_n be_v not_o credible_a if_o compare_v with_o we_o pag._n 561_o of_o visible_a miracle_n see_v though_o not_o observe_v by_o every_o protestant_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n the_o difference_n between_o true_a and_o false_a miracle_n pag._n 562_o of_o true_a miracle_n relate_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n by_o man_n of_o great_a authority_n in_o every_o age_n to_o confirm_v the_o particular_a mystery_n of_o our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o that_o sense_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o roman_a catholic_n differ_v from_o protestant_n pag._n 566_o of_o miracle_n relate_v by_o st._n chrysostom_n st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n etc._n etc._n in_o confirmation_n of_o transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_a and_o purgatory_n pag._n 567_o primate_n usher_n falsification_n to_o discredit_v two_o miracle_n pag._n 569_o how_o protestant_n falsify_v and_o corrupt_v the_o very_a statute_n and_o law-book_n pag._n 572_o miracle_n for_o the_o mass._n pag._n 573._o miracle_n for_o purgatory_n pag._n 573_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v the_o worship_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross._n pag._n 576_o miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_n worship_n of_o image_n pag._n 581_o the_o protestant_n distinction_n of_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n misapply_v by_o minister_n to_o delude_v
him-self_n be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v consecrator_n etc._n etc._n if_o then_o that_o which_o be_v greath_a than_o all_o be_v give_v indifferent_o to_o all_o man_n and_o woman_n i_o mean_v the_o word_n and_o baptism_n then_o that_o which_o be_v less_o i_o mean_v to_o consecrat_v the_o supper_n be_v also_o give_v to_o they_o so_o much_o luther_n with_o luther_n in_o this_o doctrine_n concur_v all_o the_o reform_a church_n even_o the_o prelatic_a of_o england_n seem_v to_o approve_v thereof_o in_o the_o 23._o and_o 25._o article_n of_o religion_n and_o m._n r_o horn_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n in_o the_o harbour_n an._n 1559._o n._n 2._o say_v concern_v the_o ministry_n preach_v or_o priesthood_n of_o woman_n in_o this_o point_n we_o must_v use_v a_o certain_a moderation_n and_o not_o absolute_o in_o every-wise_a debarr_n woman_n herein_o etc._n etc._n i_o pray_v you_o what_o more_o vehemency_n use_v s._n paul_n in_o forbid_v woman_n to_o preach_v then_o in_o forbid_v they_o to_o uncover_v their_o head_n and_o yet_o you_o know_v in_o the_o best_a reform_a church_n of_o all_o germany_n all_o the_o maid_n be_v bareheaded_a they_o who_o know_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n and_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o so_o much_o startle_v at_o q._n elizabeth_n spiritual_a headship_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o at_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n 8._o eliz._n 1._o wherein_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o she_o and_o her_o successor_n may_v authorise_v any_o person_n whatsoever_o whether_o lie_v man_n or_o woman_n to_o exercise_v any_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n or_o power_n in_o any_o matter_n whatsoever_o even_o of_o consecrate_v archbishop_n bishop_n priests_z etc._n etc._n and_o albeit_o afterward_o art_n 27._o there_o have_v be_v a_o explanation_n make_v concern_v the_o supremacy_n exclude_v from_o the_o church_n a_o she_o or_o lay_v ministry_n and_o priesthood_n yet_o the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n both_o of_o supremacy_n and_o episcopal_a homage_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n especial_o this_o act_n 8._o eliz._n 1._o make_v it_o most_o manifest_a that_o even_o prelatik_a protestancy_n make_v the_o temporal_a lay_v sovereign_a to_o have_v the_o source_n of_o all_o spiritual_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o the_o letter_n patent_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n direct_v to_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o render_v he_o capable_a of_o consecrate_v archbishop_n bishop_n priest_n &c._n &c._n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o aforesaid_a act_n of_o parliament_n and_o if_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o may_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n consecrat_fw-mi bishop_n priest_n etc._n etc._n without_o doubt_v the_o king_n that_o give_v that_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o the_o lay_v man_n or_o woman_n so_o authorise_v must_v of_o necessity_n have_v the_o character_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o priesthood_n which_o they_o communicate_v to_o other_o unless_o it_o be_v maintain_v that_o man_n can_v give_v what_o they_o have_v not_o themselves_o thus_o be_v protestancy_n begin_v principled_a and_o propagate_v by_o martin_n luther_n and_o his_o disciple_n and_o because_o their_o sect_n agree_v in_o nothing_o so_o unanimous_o as_o in_o protest_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n and_o the_o imperial_a decree_n enact_v in_o behalf_n thereof_o though_o some_o lutheran_n only_o exhibit_v the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n at_o auspurg_n be_v the_o protester_n yet_o all_o other_o who_o pretend_v a_o reformation_n like_o the_o name_n and_o call_v themselves_o protestant_n think_v it_o to_o be_v more_o for_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o dissent_v congregation_n to_o pretend_v unity_n of_o doctrine_n by_o assume_v one_o name_n then_o declare_v the_o novelty_n and_o diversity_n of_o their_o tenet_n by_o call_v themselves_o by_o the_o name_n of_o their_o first_o author_n and_o reformer_n now_o it_o be_v time_n we_o treat_v in_o particular_a of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n sect_n iv._o of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n it_o be_v the_o misfortune_n of_o england_n to_o have_v have_v in_o that_o time_n when_o reformation_n begin_v to_o spread_v a_o vicious_a king_n and_o lewd_a court_n a_o ambitious_a minister_n of_o state_n a_o timorous_a clergy_n and_o contemporise_a parliament_n cardinal_z wolsey_z who_o have_v be_v raise_v from_o the_o mean_a parentage_n to_o domineer_v over_o the_o english_a peerage_n not_o content_a with_o his_o good_a fortune_n and_o the_o king_n favour_n will_v needs_o be_v pope_n and_o obtain_v from_o charles_n v._o the_o emperor_n a_o promise_n of_o his_o best_a endeavour_n to_o promote_v he_o to_o that_o dignity_n but_o perceive_v himself_o delude_v when_o the_o occasion_n be_v offer_v of_o performance_n and_o that_o charles_n have_v prefer_v to_o the_o papacy_n one_o of_o his_o own_o subject_n that_o have_v be_v instructor_n to_o he_o in_o his_o tender_a age_n he_o resolve_v to_o be_v revenge_v upon_o the_o emperor_n relation_n see_v he_o can_v not_o reach_v his_o person_n and_o observe_v that_o k._n henry_n 8._o be_v weary_a of_o q._n catharin_n the_o emperor_n aunt_n and_o desire_v her_o death_n or_o divorce_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v marry_v and_o have_v issue_n male_a to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o crown_n the_o cardinal_n discourse_v with_o his_o majesty_n of_o the_o doubt_n which_o himself_o have_v raise_v and_o many_o seem_v to_o entertain_v concern_v the_o validity_n of_o a_o marriage_n with_o one_o that_o have_v be_v his_o brother_n wife_n and_o propose_v the_o public_a conveniency_n and_o private_a satisfaction_n the_o king_n may_v receive_v by_o take_v to_o wife_n some_o relation_n of_o the_o french_a king_n with_o who_o he_o persuade_v henry_n 8._o to_o make_v a_o league_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a against_o charles_n v._o who_o army_n at_o that_o time_n have_v sack_v rome_n and_o keep_v the_o pope_n prisoner_n not_o doubt_v that_o his_o holiness_n so_o oblige_v by_o henry_n and_o injure_v by_o charles_n will_v declare_v q._n catherine_n marriage_n void_a marriage_n k._n henry_n applaud_v the_o motion_n but_o like_v not_o so_o well_o the_o french_a lady_n as_o an_z bullen_z one_o of_o his_o queen_n maid_n of_o honour_n of_o who_o he_o be_v so_o desperate_o enamour_v that_o though_o he_o be_v advertise_v of_o her_o amorous_a disposition_n and_o lewd_a conversation_n by_o one_o of_o the_o courtier_n that_o say_v he_o have_v enjoy_v her_o savour_n yet_o she_o reject_v his_o majesty_n courtship_n he_o think_v she_o be_v not_o so_o cunning_a as_o chaste_a and_o persuade_v himself_o that_o a_o woman_n so_o spare_v of_o favour_n to_o a_o king_n will_v not_o be_v prodigal_a of_o they_o to_o other_o he_o give_v little_a credit_n to_o the_o public_a report_n and_o private_a information_n of_o her_o immodest_a behaviour_n and_o now_o court_v she_o not_o as_o his_o present_a mistress_n but_o as_o his_o future_a wife_n not_o question_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n who_o he_o have_v oblige_v will_v declare_v null_a his_o marriage_n with_o q._n catharin_n but_o his_o holiness_n though_o much_o incline_v to_o gratify_v the_o king_n and_o incense_v against_o the_o emperor_n for_o many_o indignity_n resolve_v neither_o to_o reward_v or_o revenge_n by_o abuse_v his_o spiritual_a authority_n which_o he_o know_v can_v not_o be_v extend_v to_o dissolve_v a_o knot_n that_o god_n have_v tie_v and_o bless_v with_o posterity_n his_o predecessor_n dispensation_n after_o mature_a deliberation_n be_v find_v to_o be_v valid_a and_o no_o way_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o prohibit_v a_o marriage_n with_o a_o decease_a brother_n wife_n levit._n 18_o that_o it_o command_v deuter._n 25._o the_o brother_n to_o marry_v his_o issueless_a brother_n widow_n and_o when_o s._n john_n baptist_n tell_v herod_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o keep_v his_o brother_n wife_n his_o brother_n be_v then_o live_v so_o that_o these_o word_n can_v not_o be_v apply_v to_o k._n henry_n 8._o his_o case_n nor_o occasion_n any_o scruple_n in_o his_o conscience_n he_o therefore_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o direct_v in_o decide_v controversy_n of_o religion_n by_o human_a respect_n or_o interest_n and_o that_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n can_v not_o be_v corrupt_v with_o bribe_n to_o favour_v his_o suit_n as_o some_o doctor_n of_o foreign_a university_n have_v be_v nor_o terify_v by_o his_o threat_n as_o be_v most_o of_o the_o english_a clergy_n he_o resolve_v to_o renounce_v that_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o supremacy_n the_o only_a let_v against_o his_o lust_n which_o all_o his_o christian_a ancestor_n have_v acknowledge_v and_o himself_o defend_v in_o a_o excellent_a treatise_n against_o luther_n demonstrate_v as_o well_o by_o scripture_n as_o by_o reason_n purpose_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rom_n supremacy_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v the_o jure_fw-la
doctrine_n and_o therefore_o resolve_v to_o accomodat_fw-la the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o his_o humour_n hooper_n and_o rogers_n agree_v upon_o a_o ecclesiastical_a government_n inconsistent_a with_o monarchy_n which_o be_v that_o over_o every_o 10._o church_n or_o parish_n in_o england_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o learned_a superintendent_n appoint_v who_o shall_v have_v faithful_a reader_n under_o he_o and_o that_o all_o popish_a priest_n shall_v clean_o be_v put_v out_o and_o to_o draw_v all_o public_a matter_n of_o state_n and_o religion_n to_o them-selve_n they_o compose_v a_o treatise_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o private_a man_n to_o reason_n and_o writ_n against_o a_o wicked_a act_n of_o parliament_n and_o ungodly_a council_n etc._n etc._n see_v fox_n pag._n 1357._o col_fw-fr 1._o num_fw-la 72._o and_o hoopers_n prophecy_n against_o the_o prelatic_a protestant_n for_o not_o conform_v them-selve_n to_o his_o puritan_n and_o presbiterian_a discipline_n pag_n 1356._o and_o of_o his_o contention_n with_o cranmer_n and_o other_o prelatic_a protestant_n about_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n etc._n etc._n fox_n pag._n 1366._o both_o cranmer_n and_o ridly_n make_v appear_v to_o the_o protector_n and_o council_n that_o hoopers_n presbiterian_a discipline_n be_v not_o consistent_a with_o the_o constitution_n of_o parliament_n and_o the_o refusal_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n to_o be_v of_o dangerous_a consequence_n in_o a_o time_n that_o devenshir_n northfolk_n and_o many_o other_o shire_n have_v take_v arm_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n it_o be_v further_o consider_v that_o so_o sudden_a a_o change_n from_o on_o extreme_a to_o a_o other_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o it_o will_v have_v be_v from_o ceremonious_a popery_n to_o plain_a presbytery_n be_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o policy_n therefore_o see_v the_o people_n have_v be_v so_o long_o accustom_v to_o the_o mass_n and_o to_o ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n it_o be_v judge_v expedient_a to_o make_v the_o vulgar_a sort_n believe_v the_o change_n be_v not_o of_o religion_n but_o of_o language_n that_o the_o common_a prayr_n be_v the_o mass_n in_o english_a that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v retain_v in_o the_o prelatic_a cap_n cope_v and_o surplise_n and_o what_o alteration_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v be_v but_o of_o thing_n indifferent_a or_o petty_a circumstance_n and_o have_v be_v resolve_v upon_o by_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n more_o to_o preserve_v uniformity_n then_o to_o promote_v novelty_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o any_o that_o will_v observe_v the_o word_n of_o the_o statute_n confirm_v the_o common_a prayr_a book_n administration_n rit_n ad_fw-la ceremony_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 2._o ed._n 6.1_o and_o the_o counsel_n letter_n to_o the_o bishop_n recite_v by_o fox_n pag._n 1184._o col_fw-fr 1._o whereof_o long_o time_n there_o have_v be_v in_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n divers_a form_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o where_o the_o king_n majesty_n have_v hereto_o before_o divers_a time_n assay_v to_o stay_v innovation_n or_o new_a rit_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o a_o uniform_a quiet_a and_o godly_a order_n shall_v be_v have_v concern_v the_o premise_n have_v appoint_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n shall_v draw_v and_o make_v one_o convenient_a and_o meet_a order_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n to_o be_v use_v in_o england_n wales_n etc._n etc._n the_o which_o at_o this_o time_n by_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o uniform_a agreement_n be_v of_o they_o conclude_v etc._n etc._n in_o the_o statut._n but_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o whole_a substance_n of_o catholic_n religion_n be_v change_v and_o nothing_o retain_v but_o so_o much_o thereof_o as_o seem_v necessary_a to_o keep_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n and_o have_v not_o be_v reject_v by_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o our_o observation_n upon_o the_o 39_o ensue_a article_n of_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n sect_n v._o of_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whosoever_o consider●●_n these_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n compose_v by_o cranmer_n and_o his_o divine_n may_v easy_o perceive_v their_o drift_n be_v rather_o to_o humour_v faction_n at_o home_n and_o dissent_v protestant_n abroad_o to_o countenance_n sensuality_n and_o grant_v a_o liberty_n of_o not_o believe_v the_o particular_n of_o christianity_n then_o to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o prescribe_v any_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n for_o their_o method_n be_v to_o word_n so_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o article_n that_o where_o protestant_n disagree_v among_o themselves_o every_o one_o of_o the_o dissent_v party_n may_v apply_v the_o text_n to_o his_o own_o sense_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o presbiterian_o except_o not_o against_o the_o doctrine_n themsel-ves_a right_o explain_v that_o be_v according_a to_o their_o explanation_n but_o against_o the_o word_v and_o expression_n thereof_o 1660._o which_o say_v they_o be_v ambiguous_a and_o capable_a of_o more_o sense_n than_o one_o and_o so_o may_v be_v and_o be_v wrest_v to_o patronise_v error_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n they_o speak_v clear_o against_o it_o because_o it_o be_v resolve_v in_o parliament_n that_o england_n shall_v be_v zuinglian_a in_o that_o point_n against_o the_o catholic_n faith_n of_o transubstantiation_n wherefore_o after_o cranmer_n and_o the_o other_o his_o contemporiser_n have_v set_v down_o in_o five_o of_o their_o six_o first_o article_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o trinity_n incarnation_n passion_n and_o resurrection_n whereof_o no_o protestant_n then_o doubt_v they_o dare_v not_o declare_v themselves_o in_o the_o three_o wheein_o they_o speak_v of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o that_o of_o the_o damn_a or_o to_o a_o three_o place_n for_o that_o if_o they_o deny_v the_o first_o they_o will_v have_v offend_v calvin_n if_o they_o deny_v the_o last_o they_o be_v sure_a to_o disoblige_v some_o lutheran_n that_o admit_v of_o lymbus_n or_o a_o three_o place_n in_o the_o six_o article_n they_o free_v all_o man_n from_o a_o obligation_n of_o believe_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o read_v in_o scripture_n or_o prove_v thereby_o and_o make_v it_o their_o ownly_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o themselves_o the_o judge_n thereof_o wherein_o they_o agree_v 73._o with_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n arian_n donatist_n eunomian_o nestorian_n etc._n etc._n but_o for_o that_o some_o protestant_a doctrine_n be_v express_o reprove_v by_o many_o part_n of_o scripture_n they_o make_v those_o part_n apocrypha_fw-la because_o forsooth_o they_o be_v doubt_v of_o by_o some_o church_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n and_o true_o if_o a_o man_n will_v reflect_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o th●ir_n six_o article_n we_o do_v understand_v those_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n of_o who_o authority_n be_v never_o any_o doubt_n in_o the_o church_n he_o may_v clear_o see_v that_o they_o believe_v many_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n because_o many_o part_n thereof_o have_v be_v doubt_v of_o in_o the_o church_n before_o the_o canon_n be_v determine_v see_v after_o part_n 2._o in_o the_o 7._o they_o only_o declare_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o observe_v the_o ceremonial_a but_o only_o the_o moral_a law_n of_o moses_n in_o the_o 8._o they_o tell_v we_o of_o four_o creed_n whereof_o s._n athanasius_n his_o symbol_n be_v one_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v because_o they_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o yet_o s._n athanasius_n himself_o declare_v in_o ●he_n council_n of_o nice_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o symbol_n that_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n alone_o euseb._n or_o without_o tradition_n in_o the_o 9_o and_o 10._o article_n they_o haeres_fw-la follow_v the_o heretic_n proclus_n the_o messalian_o zuinglius_fw-la luther_n and_o calvin_n doctrine_n concern_v original_a sin_n in_o the_o 11._o article_n they_o teach_v with_o some_o of_o the_o 54._o pseudo-apostle_n with_o eunomius_n and_o with_o the_o same_o zuinglius_fw-la luther_n and_o calvin_n that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o see_v hereafter_o of_o the_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n how_o inconsistent_a with_o any_o solicitude_n or_o care_n for_o good_a work_n and_o in_o the_o 12._o will_v feign_v but_o in_o vain_a free_v themselves_o and_o their_o doctrine_n from_o the_o aspersion_n of_o neglect_v good_a work_n though_o they_o maintain_v they_o not_o to_o be_v necessary_a for_o justification_n in_o the_o 13._o article_n they_o say_v all_o virtuous_a moral_a action_n of_o man_n ●hat_n be_v not_o in_o grace_n have_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o 14._o they_o follow_v eunomius_n vigilantius_n
have_v make_v or_o do_v by_o any_o person_n or_o person_n in_o or_o about_o any_o consecration_n 1._o confirmation_n or_o invest_v of_o any_o person_n or_o person_n elect_v to_o the_o office_n or_o dignity_n of_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n or_o commission_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o her_o reign_n so_o that_o to_o know_v whether_o d._n r_o parker_n and_o his_o comrade_n be_v true_a bishop_n none_o must_v have_v examine_v whether_o they_o have_v be_v consecrate_v by_o other_o bishop_n but_o only_o whether_o the_o person_n or_o person_n that_o be_v the_o consecrator_n whether_o lay_v man_n or_o ecclesiastic_a it_o mattered_a not_o perform_v that_o ceremony_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n or_o commission_n if_o they_o can_v show_v her_o great_a seal_n they_o may_v use_v what_o matter_n and_o form_n they_o please_v for_o 8._o by_o the_o act_n 1._o &_o 8._o eliz._n there_o be_v give_v to_o the_o queen_n highness_n her_o heir_n etc._n etc._n full_a power_n and_o authority_n by_o letter_n patent_n under_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o assign_v name_n and_o authorise_v such_o person_n or_o person_n as_o she_o and_o they_o shall_v think_v meet_a and_o convenient_a any_o lie_v man_n or_o woman_n will_v serve_v turn_n to_o exercise_v use_v enjoy_v and_o execute_v under_o her_o highness_n all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n preeminence_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o wise_a touch_v or_o concern_v any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n or_o jurisdiction_n within_o this_o realm_n or_o any_o other_o her_o majesty_n dominion_n or_o country_n now_o priesthood_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o spiritual_a power_n to_o consecrat_fw-mi christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o forgive_v sin_n and_o episcopacy_n include_v beside_o the_o same_o a_o spiritual_a power_n to_o consecrat_v and_o ordain_v other_o priest_n and_o bishop_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o by_o these_o word_n and_o statut_fw-la the_o queen_n may_v and_o her_o successor_n may_v by_o their_o sole_a letter_n patent_n and_o great_a seal_n make_v any_o lie_v man_n whether_o carter_n or_o catchpole_n a_o protestant_a bishop_n or_o priest_n see_v thereby_o he_o receive_v full_a power_n to_o exercise_v use_n execute_v etc._n etc._n all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n preeminency_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o wise_a touch_v or_o concern_v any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n etc._n etc._n and_o because_o there_o may_v remain_v no_o ambiguity_n or_o scruple_n of_o parker_n and_o the_o first_o protestant_a bishop_n valid_a and_o legal_a consecration_n the_o same_o statut_fw-la 8._o elizabeth_z 1._o assure_v we_o that_o the_o queen_n in_o her_o letter_n patent_n for_o that_o purpose_n direct_v to_o any_o archbishop_n bishop_n or_o other_o mark_z the_o word_n other_o for_o the_o confirm_v invest_v and_o consecrate_v of_o any_o person_n elect_v to_o the_o office_n or_o dignity_n of_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n have_v not_o only_o use_v such_o word_n and_o sentence_n as_o be_v accustom_v to_o be_v use_v by_o the_o late_a king_n henry_n and_o king_n edward_z her_o majesty_n father_n and_o brother_n in_o their_o like_a letter_n patent_n make_v for_o such_o cause_n but_o also_o have_v use_v divers_a other_o general_a word_n and_o sentence_n whereby_o her_o majesty_n by_o her_o supreme_a power_n and_o authority_n have_v dispense_v with_o all_o cause_n or_o doubt_n of_o any_o inperfection_n or_o disability_n that_o can_v or_o may_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v object_v against_o the_o same_o as_o by_o her_o majesty_n say_v letter_n patent_n remain_v on_o record_n more_o plain_o will_v appear_v now_o mr._n bramhal_o the_o late_a primate_n will_v fain_o make_v the_o parliament_n so_o senseless_a and_o his_o reader_n so_o simple_a as_o to_o refer_v the_o word_n mention_v and_o compare_v the_o record_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o father_n and_o brother_n time_n in_o this_o act_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n register_n and_o not_o to_o their_o majesty_n letter_n patent_n where_o as_o by_o the_o whole_a context_n and_o discourse_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o parliament_n drift_n be_v to_o show_v no_o such_o ceremonious_a solemnity_n as_o of_o late_a have_v be_v pretend_v and_o print_v by_o mr._n mason_n be_v necessary_a have_v there_o be_v any_o such_o legal_a or_o formal_a consecration_n at_o lambeth_n as_o 50._o year_n after_o be_v forge_v and_o foist_v into_o the_o archbishops_n register_n the_o parliament_n 8._o eliz._n 1._o will_v have_v remit_v we_o thereunto_o name_v lambeth_n and_o not_o insist_v altogeth_a upon_o the_o queen_n dispensation_n for_o the_o validity_n and_o legality_n of_o her_o first_o bishop_n consecration_n and_o character_n 1659._o many_o be_v the_o reason_n late_o print_v and_o not_o like_a to_o be_v answer_v that_o persuade_v all_o prudent_a man_n who_o have_v not_o too_o great_a a_o passion_n for_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n to_o believe_v that_o mr._n mason_n new_a find_v register_n of_o lambeth_n be_v forge_v 1._o it_o be_v never_o produce_v nor_o mention_v by_o the_o first_o bishop_n so_o much_o press_v by_o their_o adversary_n to_o show_v some_o register_n or_o any_o evidence_n for_o their_o consecration_n 2._o they_o be_v only_o desire_v to_o let_v the_o world_n know_v where_o when_o and_o by_o who_o they_o have_v be_v make_v bishop_n question_n easy_o answer_v have_v they_o be_v consecrate_v at_o lambeth_n or_o any_o register_n then_o extant_a when_o dr._n harding_n stapleton_n and_o other_o charge_v they_o with_o nulity_n and_o illegality_n of_o episcopal_a character_n 3._o it_o be_v no_o more_o credible_a that_o such_o know_v and_o conscientious_a man_n as_o stapleton_n harding_n fitzherbert_n etc._n etc._n then_o live_v in_o england_n and_o probable_o at_o london_n will_v question_v so_o public_a and_o solemn_a a_o action_n than_o it_o be_v that_o a_o sober_a man_n will_v now_o call_v in_o doubt_n king_n charl'_v 2._o coronation_n at_o westminster_n or_o ask_v in_o print_n who_o set_v the_o crown_n upon_o his_o head_n pretend_v he_o never_o have_v be_v crown_v and_o though_o bishop_n godwin_n and_o other_o prelatic_a writer_n abuse_v dr._n harding_n holiwood_n fitzsimons_n etc._n etc._n for_o relate_v the_o meeting_n of_o the_o first_o protestant_n bishop_n with_o a_o design_n to_o be_v ordain_v at_o the_o nagshead_n in_o cheapside_n yet_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o albeit_o there_o can_v be_v no_o design_n to_o feign_v that_o story_n yet_o our_o controversy_n with_o the_o prelaticks_n be_v not_o whether_o their_o first_o prelate_n be_v ordain_v there_o but_o whether_o they_o be_v ordain_v any_o where_o we_o know_v bishop_n may_v be_v as_o valid_o consecrate_v in_o a_o tavern_n though_o not_o so_o decent_o as_o in_o a_o church_n but_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o also_o consider_v 132._o that_o if_o dr._n parker_n and_o their_o first_o bishop_n be_v so_o narrow_o watch_v by_o mr._n neal_n and_o other_o catholic_n who_o primate_n bramhal_o do_v call_v spy_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v merry_a in_o a_o tavern_n without_o their_o knowledge_n they_o can_v hardly_o perform_v so_o serious_a and_o solemn_a a_o action_n in_o a_o church_n as_o the_o first_o consecration_n of_o a_o protestant_a archbishop_n without_o their_o observation_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n then_o so_o much_o seek_v after_o and_o controverse_v of_o so_o great_a curiosity_n in_o itself_o and_o of_o great_a concern_n to_o we_o the_o total_a credit_n and_o be_v of_o their_o new_a reformation_n depend_v thereupon_o and_o yet_o for_o above_o 50._o year_n none_o of_o the_o writer_n of_o either_o side_n catholic_n or_o protestant_n who_o mention_v all_o other_o particular_n relate_v to_o the_o reformation_n write_v or_o speak_v a_o word_n of_o this_o solemnity_n at_o lambeth_n the_o puritan_n indeed_o upray_v the_o prelaticks_n with_o say_v their_o episcopal_a ordination_n in_o england_n have_v its_o beginning_n and_o progress_n in_o a_o corner_n not_o in_o a_o congregation_n 43._o but_o we_o can_v not_o imagine_v they_o can_v mistake_v the_o archiepiscopal_a chapel_n of_o lambeth_n for_o a_o corner_n or_o deny_v that_o the_o great_a assembly_n pretend_v to_o have_v have_v be_v at_o dr._n parker_n consecration_n deserve_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o congregation_n queen_n elizabeth_n clergy_n thus_o create_v by_o her_o patent_n and_o parliament_n they_o endeavour_v to_o show_v themselves_o gratful_a to_o her_o majesty_n by_o make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o popery_n by_o the_o principle_n whereof_o she_o be_v uncapable_a of_o the_o crown_n be_v idolatry_n the_o pope_n antichrist_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o that_o end_n corrupt_v scripture_n in_o their_o english_a translation_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v hereafter_o and_o because_o their_o fraud_n and_o folly_n be_v discover_v by_o catholic_n priest_n part_n the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a law_n be_v enact_v and_o execute_v
way_n in_o external_a matter_n concern_v discipline_n they_o have_v trouble_v the_o church_n another_o way_n in_o oppose_v themselves_o by_o new_a quirk_n and_o device_n to_o the_o soundness_n of_o doctrine_n among_o protestant_n and_o true_o to_o pretend_v with_o all_o reform_a church_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n profess_v as_o the_o learned_a prelatic_a writer_n do_v in_o their_o book_n that_o without_o his_o character_n of_o priesthood_n there_o can_v be_v no_o orthodox_n clergy_n or_o christian_a church_n be_v thing_n that_o do_v not_o hang_v well_o together_o neither_o be_v it_o credible_a that_o so_o zealous_a protestant_n as_o be_v the_o first_o english_a reformer_n cranmer_n coverdale_n bale_n etc._n etc._n who_o strain_a scripture_n in_o their_o translation_n and_o make_v formal_a abjuration_n against_o the_o character_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o priesthood_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o parker_n jewel_n horn_n etc._n etc._n who_o receive_v that_o same_o doctrine_n and_o exclude_v those_o character_n by_o a_o express_a article_n of_o their_o 39_o of_o religion_n from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o from_o their_o form_n of_o ordination_n it_o be_v not_o i_o say_v credible_a that_o these_o and_o the_o like_a man_n do_v maintain_v in_o their_o convocation_n the_o late_a prelatick_fw-mi contrary_a doctrine_n or_o that_o they_o exercise_v or_o record_v any_o such_o popish_a formality_n of_o consecrate_v priest_n and_o bishop_n by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n as_o m._n r_o mason_n pretend_v he_o find_v in_o parker_n register_n at_o lambeth_n as_o appear_v also_o to_o any_o that_o will_v consider_v the_o homely_a choice_n and_o cal_v of_o the_o primitive_a pastor_n and_o preacher_n of_o our_o prelatic_a protestancy_n object_v to_o themselves_o in_o print_n when_o they_o be_v live_v and_o yet_o can_v not_o deny_v the_o fact_n neither_o do_v they_o go_v about_o to_o excuse_v it_o not_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o fault_n d._n r_o kelison_n in_o his_o survey_n pag._n 373._o &_o 374._o say_v of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n in_o q._n elizab._n time_n lay_v man_n be_v take_v of_o which_o some_o be_v base_a artificer_n and_o without_o any_o other_o consecration_n or_o ordination_n then_o the_o prince_n or_o the_o superintendent_n be_v letter_n make_v they_o minister_n and_o bishop_n with_o as_o few_o ceremony_n and_o less_o solemnity_n than_o they_o make_v their_o alderman_n yea_o constable_n and_o crier_n of_o the_o market_n d._n r_o stapleton_n in_o his_o counterblast_n lib._n 4._o num_fw-la 481_o say_v and_o wherein_o i_o pray_v you_o rest_v a_o great_a part_n of_o your_o new_a clergy_n but_o in_o butcher_n cook_n catchpole_n and_o cobbler_n dyer_n and_o dawber_n fellow_n carry_v their_o mark_n in_o their_o hand_n instead_o of_o a_o shave_a crown_n etc._n etc._n see_v therefore_o our_o catholic_n argument_n convince_v all_o disintere_v person_n that_o weigh_v they_o of_o the_o absurdity_n and_o novelty_n of_o protestancy_n in_o general_a and_o such_o as_o do_v not_o take_v they_o to_o be_v of_o any_o weight_n because_o themselves_o be_v bias_v and_o bend_v against_o we_o by_o education_n or_o interest_n must_v needs_o take_v notice_n if_o they_o think_v serious_o of_o any_o religion_n or_o of_o their_o own_o protestant_a principle_n that_o the_o prelatic_a reformation_n be_v but_o a_o politic_a appendix_n or_o addition_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n in_o pursuance_n of_o her_o father_n passion_n and_o by_o herself_o resolve_v upon_o more_o for_o secure_v a_o crown_n then_o save_v the_o soul_n steward_n and_o therefore_o contain_v more_o mystery_n of_o state_n then_o of_o faith_n and_o more_o regard_v conveniency_n then_o conscience_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o laity_n of_o her_o clergy_n by_o her_o she-supremacy_n by_o the_o anticipate_v royalty_n of_o her_o unlawful_a issue_n in_o case_n she_o will_v be_v please_v to_o own_o any_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v be_v no_o calumny_n of_o malignant_a pen_n or_o person_n but_o most_o manifest_a by_o she_o own_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o act_n of_o parliament_n can_v hardly_o be_v digest_v by_o honest_a subject_n much_o less_o settle_v as_o divine_a truth_n in_o christian_a soul_n or_o carry_v the_o face_n of_o a_o pious_a and_o plausible_a religion_n even_o among_o the_o most_o silly_a sort_n of_o people_n yet_o far_o be_v it_o from_o our_o thought_n to_o censure_v with_o folly_n or_o impiety_n such_o as_o suck_v with_o their_o nurse_n milk_n the_o poison_n of_o this_o prelatic_a protestancy_n no_o we_o know_v they_o want_v neither_o piety_n nor_o policy_n according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n but_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o be_v offend_v if_o according_a to_o we_o we_o do_v pity_v their_o condition_n and_o pray_v for_o their_o conversion_n we_o believe_v their_o zeal_n against_o our_o catholic_a religion_n proceed_v not_o from_o malice_n but_o mistake_v and_o desire_v they_o may_v likewise_o believe_v our_o intention_n be_v only_o to_o expel_v by_o this_o antidote_n the_o poison_n which_o other_o have_v infuse_v into_o their_o brain_n this_o humble_a apology_n and_o explanation_n do_v not_o relate_v to_o they_o that_o make_v the_o change_n of_o religion_n for_o prefer_v q._n elizabeth_n and_o any_o natural_a issue_n of_o her_o body_n to_o the_o crown_n before_o the_o lawful_a heir_n who_o by_o god_n providence_n since_o her_o death_n and_o at_o this_o present_n enjoy_v right_a nor_o to_o any_o that_o will_v obstinate_o maintain_v such_o proceed_n it_o be_v intend_v for_o all_o well_o mean_v protestant_n that_o believe_v themselves_o to_o be_v catholic_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o wish_v they_o be_v and_o that_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v settle_v in_o these_o nation_n but_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o that_o private_a person_n be_v mistake_v in_o protestancy_n when_o the_o royal_a family_n of_o the_o steward_n against_o who_o title_n and_o succession_n it_o be_v introduce_v and_o establish_v both_o in_o england_n and_o scotland_n in_o england_n by_o q._n elizabeth_n in_o scotland_n by_o the_o bastard_n murry_n be_v so_o much_o in_o love_n with_o that_o religion_n devise_v for_o their_o own_o ruin_n so_o bewitch_v a_o thing_n be_v education_n engraft_v in_o good_a disposition_n and_o so_o dangerous_a if_o not_o cultivate_v and_o correct_v by_o our_o own_o more_o mature_a reflection_n when_o we_o arrive_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n sect_n ix_o how_o injurious_a protestancy_n have_v be_v to_o the_o royal_a family_n of_o the_o steward_n and_o how_o zealous_a they_o have_v be_v and_o be_v in_o promote_a the_o same_o after_o that_o king_n henry_n 8._o have_v usurp_v the_o pop_n supremacy_n reformation_n and_o divise_v certain_a article_n of_o religion_n he_o desire_v his_o nephew_n k._n james_n 5._o of_o scotland_n to_o follow_v his_o example_n which_o that_o catholic_n prince_n refuse_v to_o do_v king_n henry_n in_o his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n confirm_v by_o his_o protestant_a parliament_n exclude_v the_o royal_a family_n of_o scotland_n from_o their_o right_n and_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n prefer_v before_o the_o steward_n not_o only_o his_o illegitimat_fw-la daughter_n elizabeth_n but_o the_o grays_n and_o all_o other_o that_o descend_v of_o the_o young_a sister_n queen_n dowager_n of_o france_n and_o duchess_n of_o suffolk_n king_n james_n 5._o decease_a his_o wife_n the_o queen_n regent_n of_o scotland_n and_o his_o young_a daughter_n queen_n mary_n be_v so_o persecute_v by_o the_o scotch_a and_o english_a protestant_n that_o the_o queen_n regent_n be_v depose_v and_o queen_n mary_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v for_o refuge_n into_o france_n after_o her_o return_n into_o scotland_n the_o king_n her_o husband_n be_v murder_v by_o the_o protestant_n his_o subject_n and_o the_o innocent_a queen_n trepane_v by_o her_o protestant_n bastard_n brother_n to_o marry_v borthvel_n one_o of_o the_o murderer_n with_o a_o design_n to_o diffame_v and_o depose_v herself_o from_o the_o government_n which_o the_o bastard_n have_v usurp_v and_o have_v murder_v likewise_o king_n james_n 6._o a_o infant_n but_o that_o god_n prevent_v his_o wicked_a design_n by_o permit_v he_o to_o be_v kill_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o hamilton_n other_o protestant_n succeed_v the_o bastard_n murry_n in_o the_o government_n and_o though_o king_n james_n escape_v the_o danger_n and_o design_n they_o have_v lay_v for_o his_o life_n yet_o they_o pervert_v his_o soul_n and_o when_o he_o be_v but_o 13._o month_n old_a protestancy_n be_v set_v up_o in_o his_o name_n his_o mother_n be_v drive_v out_o of_o her_o own_o kingdom_n by_o those_o protestant_n that_o depose_v herself_o and_o abuse_v her_o son_n minority_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o public_a faith_n and_o private_a promise_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n imprison_v in_o england_n her_o rebel_n countenance_v and_o herself_o at_o
length_n most_o unworthy_o murder_v by_o the_o joint_a consent_n of_o a_o protestant_a queen_n and_o parliament_n and_o her_o son_n and_o family_n exclude_v from_o the_o british_a empire_n in_o case_n queen_n elizabeth_n shall_v have_v or_o at_o least_o own_o any_o natural_a issue_n which_o many_o suppose_v be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o she_o or_o the_o parliament_n will_v never_o declare_v her_o successor_n king_n james_n have_v be_v bring_v up_o in_o this_o school_n of_o affliction_n attain_v to_o more_o than_o ordinary_a wisdom_n dissemble_v with_o his_o enemy_n in_o england_n and_o strengthen_v him-self_n with_o as_o many_o friend_n and_o ally_n as_o he_o can_v in_o foreign_a nation_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v recover_v his_o right_n after_o queen_n elizabeth_n death_n which_o he_o and_o the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o world_n every_o day_n long_v son_n he_o keep_v fair_a with_o france_n spain_n and_o even_o with_o the_o pope_n he_o succour_v tyrone_n tirconel_n and_o the_o irish_a scot_n in_o irland_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n but_o under_o hand_n he_o correspond_v with_o the_o catholic_n party_n in_o england_n and_o be_v civil_a even_o to_o that_o party_n that_o contrive_v and_o press_v his_o mother_n murder_n by_o his_o marriage_n he_o obtain_v the_o confederacy_n of_o denmarck_n and_o the_o protestant_a prince_n of_o germany_n for_o recover_v of_o england_n cecil_n and_o other_o of_o the_o english_a council_n observe_v how_o prudent_o this_o young_a king_n have_v order_v his_o affair_n and_o prepare_v him-self_n for_o be_v their_o master_n court_v he_o and_o unknown_a to_o the_o queen_n give_v he_o daily_a intelligence_n and_o think_v it_o their_o best_a course_n to_o fix_v upon_o he_o for_o her_o successor_n see_v they_o can_v hardly_o keep_v he_o out_o they_o invite_v he_o to_o the_o throne_n after_o his_o enemie_n death_n and_o he_o find_v that_o very_a protestancy_n by_o which_o his_o mother_n and_o him-self_n have_v be_v so_o long_o exclude_v from_o their_o right_n and_o will_v have_v be_v for_o ever_o if_o queen_n elizabeth_n have_v be_v as_o capable_a as_o it_o be_v say_v she_o be_v desirous_a of_o posterity_n be_v deep_o root_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o most_o of_o his_o english_a subject_n who_o either_o do_v not_o see_v he_o change_v or_o not_o observe_v the_o motive_n and_o mystery_n thereof_o king_n james_n i_o say_v reflect_v upon_o this_o inclination_n of_o the_o people_n to_o protestancy_n conform_a him-self_n unto_o that_o reformation_n which_o have_v be_v settle_v by_o law_n in_o england_n discountenance_v the_o puritan_n by_o who_o doctrine_n he_o have_v be_v persecute_v in_o scotland_n and_o will_v have_v tolerate_v the_o catholic_n if_o the_o gun_n powder_n treason_n whereunto_o some_o few_o discontent_a and_o desperate_a papist_n be_v cunning_o draw_v by_o cecil_n to_o make_v their_o religion_n odious_a have_v not_o blast_v our_o hope_n and_o blot_v out_o of_o his_o majesty_n be_v memory_n what_o we_o have_v suffer_v for_o his_o mother_n and_o how_o not_o only_o our_o person_n but_o our_o principle_n have_v be_v persecute_v for_o support_v the_o title_n of_o his_o family_n to_o the_o british_a empire_n by_o king_n james_n his_o learned_a work_n and_o discourse_n it_o be_v manifest_a he_o have_v a_o design_n to_o reform_v the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n and_o reduce_v they_o to_o some_o rule_n of_o reason_n and_o confine_v that_o dangerous_a liberty_n which_o they_o give_v to_o every_o private_a protestant_n of_o be_v supreme_a judge_n in_o all_o spiritual_a controversy_n to_o one_o certain_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o may_v be_v less_o prejudicial_a to_o monarchy_n monarch_n peace_n and_o all_o civil_a government_n than_o the_o protestant_a arbitrary_a interpretation_n have_v prove_v hitherto_o to_o that_o purpose_n he_o command_v the_o bible_n to_o be_v true_o translate_v and_o those_o fraudulent_a and_o foolish_a corruption_n to_o be_v correct_v which_o have_v be_v impose_v upon_o the_o people_n for_o god_n word_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n clergy_n for_o maintain_v her_o title_n and_o secure_v the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n to_o themselves_o but_o his_o command_n be_v not_o obey_v some_o falcification_n in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v correct_v but_o very_o few_o in_o respect_n of_o what_o remain_v and_o pass_v now_o current_a for_o true_a scripture_n he_o declare_v that_o catholic_n and_o their_o religion_n have_v no_o hand_n in_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n those_o few_o person_n except_v which_o have_v be_v execute_v he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o christendom_n and_o rome_n the_o mother_n church_n he_o suspend_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n commend_v not_o apostatise_v priest_n that_o become_v protestant_n as_o he_o say_v to_o get_v wench_n and_o benefice_n these_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o out_o of_o any_o inclination_n to_o popery_n but_o out_o of_o his_o zeal_n to_o protestancy_n which_o he_o perceive_v will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n become_v as_o infamous_a as_o it_o be_v intolerable_a to_o monarch_n in_o case_n its_o principle_n be_v not_o correct_v and_o bring_v near_o unto_o catholic_n tenet_n after_o king_n james_n his_o death_n his_o son_n king_n charles_n 1._o pursue_v the_o father_n design_n but_o find_v by_o sad_a experience_n that_o the_o protestant_a liberty_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n can_v be_v restrain_v to_o reason_n by_o any_o human_a industry_n of_o the_o wise_a prince_n especial_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v guide_v by_o a_o fallible_a church_n that_o confess_v its_o own_o uncertainty_n of_o doctrine_n king_n charles_n the_o 1._o be_v persuade_v by_o his_o council_n and_o clergy_n that_o the_o law_n which_o have_v be_v enact_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o prelatic_a fallible_a church_n and_o doubtful_a jurisdiction_n be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n and_o authority_n to_o contain_v protestant_a subject_n in_o awe_n and_o obedience_n and_o to_o stop_v the_o course_n and_o consequence_n of_o those_o fundamental_a and_o violent_a principle_n of_o their_o reformation_n against_o superiority_n at_o the_o church_n of_o rom_n door_n and_o keep_v they_o from_o pass_v further_o or_o entrench_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o the_o mistake_n soon_o appear_v they_o who_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o prelatic_a principle_n to_o rebel_v against_o their_o roman_a superior_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o a_o religious_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o evangelical_a reformation_n can_v not_o then_o nor_o can_v for_o the_o future_a be_v contain_v or_o deter_v by_o any_o authority_n from_o rebel_a against_o their_o protestant_a king_n and_o bishop_n upon_o the_o same_o score_n who_o superiority_n can_v not_o be_v more_o authentic_a than_o the_o roman_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o because_o the_o king_n have_v engage_v in_o the_o bishop_n quarrel_n he_o draw_v upon_o himself_o the_o odium_fw-la of_o all_o protestant_n that_o with_o the_o spirit_n and_o zeal_n of_o reformation_n stick_v to_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n which_o be_v to_o contemn_v all_o authority_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a which_o any_o private_a person_n judge_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o see_v the_o prelatic_a church_n of_o england_n do_v grant_v this_o doctrine_n be_v lawful_a in_o luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n parker_n and_o other_o particular_a person_n church_n and_o state_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o their_o then_o acknowledge_v spiritual_a and_o temporal_a superior_n it_o will_v be_v very_o difficult_a to_o show_v why_o now_o a_o presbiterian_a or_o fanatic_a congregation_n may_v not_o as_o rational_o pretend_v and_o as_o lawful_o practice_v the_o same_o doctrine_n as_o their_o primitive_a protestant_a predecessor_n have_v do_v and_o so_o in_o virtue_n of_o this_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n be_v the_o sacred_a person_n of_o a_o good_a king_n judge_v and_o murder_v by_o a_o rude_a and_o wicked_a multitude_n without_o regard_n to_o innocency_n or_o respect_n to_o sovereignty_n and_o by_o a_o remarkable_a revolution_n of_o time_n and_o interest_n the_o grandson_n come_v to_o loose_v his_o head_n for_o uphold_v that_o same_o prelatic_a religion_n and_o clergy_n which_o by_o q._n elizabeth_n have_v be_v raise_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o his_o grandmother_n and_o the_o exclusion_n of_o his_o family_n from_o the_o crown_n since_o christian_a sovereign_n have_v reign_v the_o like_a tragedy_n have_v not_o be_v act_v many_o prince_n have_v be_v murder_v by_o their_o subject_n but_o never_o by_o any_o such_o formality_n of_o law_n and_o a_o public_a court_n of_o judicature_n pretend_v superiority_n in_o themselves_o and_o scripture_n for_o their_o rule_n and_o warrant_n wherefore_o they_o that_o look_v into_o the_o principle_n and_o privilege_n for_o the_o future_a in_o so_o zealous_a and_o resolute_a a_o people_n as_o the_o english_a who_o stand_v much_o upon_o
enjoy_v their_o temporal_a liberty_n and_o much_o more_o upon_o the_o spritual_a prerogative_n of_o protestancy_n which_o according_a to_o luther_n the_o first_o author_n etc._n and_o apostle_n thereof_o be_v omne_fw-la judicemus_fw-la &_o regamus_fw-la let_v we_o judge_n and_o govern_v all_o thing_n and_o not_o only_o his_o german_a scholar_n brentius_n but_o our_o english_a bishop_n bilson_n and_o all_o prelaticks_n grant_v that_o the_o people_n must_v be_v discerner_n and_o judge_n of_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v and_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n explain_v the_o 39_o article_n thereof_o say_v authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o every_o member_n of_o sound_a judgement_n in_o the_o same_o to_o judge_v controversy_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v not_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o our_o church_n but_o also_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o godly_a brethren_n in_o foreign_a nation_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o tenet_n of_o calvin_n but_o of_o all_o protestant_a writer_n that_o temporal_a law_n oblige_v not_o in_o conscience_n any_o christian_n to_o obey_v it_o be_v therefore_o a_o principle_n and_o privilege_n even_o of_o prelatic_a protestancy_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o 39_o article_n that_o every_o member_n of_o sound_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o judge_v controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o consequence_n all_o other_o difference_n that_o may_v be_v reduce_v thereunto_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o any_o king_n to_o be_v a_o sovereign_n among_o protestant_n who_o be_v all_o supreme_a judge_n both_o of_o faith_n and_o state_n for_o that_o state-affair_n be_v subordinat_a to_o religion_n and_o must_v be_v manage_v according_a to_o the_o protestant_a sense_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n and_o interpretation_n of_o every_o particular_a protestant_n or_o of_o he_o that_o can_v form_n or_o fool_n the_o multitude_n into_o his_o own_o opinion_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v not_o be_v astonish_v that_o man_n constitute_v supreme_a judge_n and_o interpreter_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o legal_a authority_n and_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o by_o the_o evangelical_n liberty_n of_o protestancy_n shall_v presume_v to_o make_v them-selve_n the_o king_n judge_n for_o my_o part_n i_o shall_v think_v it_o a_o great_a providence_n of_o god_n and_o extraordinary_a prudence_n in_o the_o government_n to_o see_v any_o king_n of_o england_n during_o the_o profession_n and_o legality_n of_o such_o principle_n in_o his_o kingdom_n escape_v the_o like_a danger_n and_o do_v continualy_a pray_v that_o their_o good_a angel_n may_v deliver_v they_o from_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n his_o majesty_n that_o by_o miracle_n now_o reign_v long_a may_v he_o live_v and_o prosper_v have_v be_v force_v to_o lurk_v for_o his_o life_n in_o one_o of_o those_o secret_a place_n whereunto_o priest_n retire_v when_o they_o be_v search_v for_o god_n give_v he_o to_o understand_v thereby_o that_o the_o most_o powerful_a prince_n where_o protestancy_n prevail_v even_o in_o their_o own_o kingdom_n be_v never_o secure_a and_o may_v be_v often_o reduce_v to_o as_o hard_a shift_n and_o as_o great_a extremity_n as_o the_o poor_a priest_n and_o mean_a subject_n religion_n and_o government_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o inconsistency_n of_o protestant_a principle_n with_o christian_a piety_n and_o peaceable_a government_n sect_n i._o prove_v by_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n which_o be_v a_o supposition_n of_o the_o fallibility_n and_o fall_v of_o the_o visible_a catholic_n church_n from_o the_o pure_a and_o primitive_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n into_o notorious_a superstition_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o first_o part_n it_o have_v be_v say_v that_o the_o groundworck_n as_o well_o of_o policy_n as_o of_o peace_n and_o piety_n consist_v in_o make_v that_o persuasion_n to_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o state_n which_o be_v most_o credible_a or_o most_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n because_o no_o command_n duty_n tax_n or_o charge_n will_v seem_v intolerable_a to_o subject_n for_o the_o preservation_n and_o propagation_n of_o such_o a_o religion_n nor_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o spirititual_a and_o temporal_a minister_n to_o who_o charge_n be_v commit_v the_o government_n of_o such_o a_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n how_o far_o all_o kind_n of_o protestancy_n even_o the_o prelatic_a be_v from_o have_v this_o prerogative_n we_o shall_v demonstrat_fw-la in_o this_o part_n of_o our_o treatise_n and_o in_o this_o section_n prove_v the_o same_o by_o the_o absurdity_n of_o the_o fundamental_a protestant_a principle_n common_a as_o well_o to_o the_o prelatic_a as_o to_o all_o other_o reformation_n the_o foundation_n whereupon_o all_o protestant_a reformation_n be_v build_v be_v this_o incredible_a or_o rather_o impossible_a supposition_n viz._n that_o all_o the_o visible_a and_o know_a christian_a church_n of_o the_o world_n ●ell_o from_o that_o purity_n and_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v once_o profess_v into_o superstition_n and_o damnable_a error_n until_o at_o length_n in_o the_o 15._o age_n god_n send_v the_o protestant_a reformer_n to_o revive_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n who_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o all_o other_o then_o visible_a be_v pretend_v to_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n and_o schism_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n not_o consistent_a with_o salvation_n but_o this_o supposition_n be_v incredible_a 1._o because_o protestant_n confess_v the_o fall_n and_o change_v of_o religion_n be_v not_o perceive_v until_o 1300._o or_o until_o at_o least_o 1000_o year_n christianity_n after_o it_o happen_v and_o such_o a_o imperceptible_a change_n in_o christian_a religion_n involue_n as_o plain_a contradiction_n as_o a_o silent_a thunder_n for_o either_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o all_o the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n that_o any_o alteration_n of_o doctrine_n begin_v be_v so_o stupid_a as_o not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o so_o important_a and_o remarcable_a a_o object_n or_o so_o wicked_a as_o to_o observe_v and_o yet_o not_o oppose_v novelty_n so_o destructive_a to_o the_o soul_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n both_o which_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v groundless_a calumny_n by_o the_o acknowledge_a zeal_n learning_n and_o integrity_n wherewith_o many_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n be_v endue_v in_o every_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n as_o their_o work_n yet_o extant_a do_v testify_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o protestant_a supposition_n be_v not_o only_o incredible_a but_o impossible_a because_o the_o suppose_a change_n of_o christian_a religion_n into_o popish_a superstition_n be_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v only_o a_o change_n of_o the_o inward_a persuasion_n but_o of_o the_o outward_a profession_n visible_a and_o observable_a in_o ceremony_n and_o practice_n answerable_a to_o the_o mystery_n believe_v as_o the_o adore_a of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n worship_n of_o jmage_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n public_a prayer_n in_o unknown_a language_n etc._n etc._n how_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o christian_a man_n or_o congregation_n can_v begin_v so_o discernible_a and_o damnable_a novelty_n as_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n transubstantiation_n worship_n of_o jmage_n communion_n of_o the_o laity_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a language_n the_o pop_n supremacy_n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n jndulgence_n pray_v to_o saint_n the_o unmarried_a life_n of_o priest_n etc._n etc._n how_o be_v it_o possible_a i_o say_v that_o any_o one_o shall_v begin_v to_o teach_v and_o practice_v any_o of_o these_o suppose_a damnable_a doctrine_n and_o yet_o never_o be_v note_v or_o reprehend_v by_o any_o one_o prelate_n pastor_n or_o preacher_n who_o be_v according_a to_o isaiah_n the_o wat●chmen_n 4.11_o of_o te_fw-la visible_a church_n until_o luther_n time_n or_o at_o least_o until_o these_o suppose_a superstition_n have_v be_v so_o universal_o spread_v so_o deep_o root_v and_o plausible_o receive_v as_o catholic_n truth_n and_o as_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o who_o censure_v and_o oppose_v any_o of_o they_o be_v for_o so_o do_v immediate_o cry_v down_o and_o condemn_v by_o the_o then_o visible_a and_o catholic_n church_n and_o counsel_n as_o notorious_a heretic_n how_o come_v the_o preacher_n and_o professor_n of_o these_o pretend_a popish_a error_n to_o escape_v for_o so_o many_o age_n as_o protestant_n confess_v they_o have_v continue_v uncontrolled_a from_o the_o censure_n of_o christ_n pure_a protestant_n congregation_n if_o there_o be_v any_o upon_o earth_n during_o that_o time_n be_v there_o not_o one_o bishop_n priest_n or_o preacher_n in_o all_o the_o world_n for_o so_o many_o age_n
the_o canon_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o if_o the_o jew_n may_v not_o doubt_v and_o omit_v to_o put_v some_o book_n divine_o inspire_v into_o the_o canon_n as_o well_o as_o the_o primitive_a christian_n or_o as_o if_o the_o apostle_n may_v not_o supply_v that_o defect_n and_o declare_v some_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n whereof_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o jew_n doubt_v to_o be_v canonical_a subsect_n i._o doctor_n cousin_n exception_n and_o falsification_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n authority_n answer_v the_o difference_n between_o new_a definition_n and_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n explain_v the_o protestant_a obstinacy_n be_v not_o excusable_a by_o the_o exception_n make_v against_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n that_o vote_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o against_o the_o pretend_a novelty_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o they_o decree_v as_o to_o their_o number_n the_o authority_n of_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o general_a council_n be_v no_o more_o limit_v or_o diminish_v by_o the_o absence_n of_o member_n lega_o summon_v and_o long_o expect_v than_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o lawful_a parliament_n by_o the_o absence_n of_o many_o lord_n and_o commons_o especial_o if_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o apply_v present_a remedy_n to_o the_o distemper_n of_o church_n or_o common-weal_n doctor_n cousin_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o reformation_n and_o that_o the_o council_n be_v too_o much_o difer_v and_o delay_v after_o they_o have_v meet_v at_o trent_n see_v the_o bishop_n be_v not_o as_o many_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o legate_n expect_v and_o wish_v to●_n for_o the_o great_a solemnity_n of_o so_o important_a a_o decision_n as_o that_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n whereupon_o they_o be_v to_o ground_v their_o further_a definition_n they_o put_v of_o that_o session_n for_o 8._o month_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o they_o hear_v that_o beside_o those_o who_o be_v at_o trent_n many_o bishop_n be_v set_v forth_o and_o other_o in_o their_o journey_n they_o differ_v the_o definition_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n for_o three_o month_n more_o to_o the_o end_n as_o many_o as_o can_v possible_o come_v may_v be_v present_a if_o through_o neglect_n contempt_n age_n infirmity_n or_o other_o accident_n whereof_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o in_o fault_n many_o bishop_n be_v absent_a that_o can_v no_o more_o prejudice_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n than_o the_o like_a circumstance_n disannul_v the_o authority_n or_o make_v void_a the_o act_n of_o our_o parliament_n but_o sure_a the_o learned_a protestant_a pastor_n can_v but_o smile_v at_o the_o simplicity_n of_o their_o illiterate_a flock_n when_o they_o consider_v the_o zeal_n and_o earnestness_n wherewith_o they_o except_v against_o the_o small_a number_n of_o bishop_n and_o their_o presumption_n forsooth_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o the_o declare_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o other_o divine_a truth_n and_o yet_o them-selve_n accept_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o their_o own_o church_n upon_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o one_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n or_o upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o 12._o or_o seven_o man_n appoint_v by_o parliament_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o edward_n 6._o beside_o our_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o trent_n afterward_o together_o with_o the_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n therein_o define_v and_o though_o doctor_n cousin_n pag._n 208._o tell_v how_o the_o prince_n and_o reform_a church_n in_o germany_n england_n denmark_n etc._n etc._n immediate_o set_v forth_o their_o protestation_n and_o exception_n against_o the_o council_n aleadge_v that_o the_o cal_n of_o this_o council_n by_o the_o pop_n authority_n alone_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o right_n of_o king_n and_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o have_v summon_v no_o other_o person_n thither_o nor_o intend_v to_o admit_v any_o either_o to_o debate_n or_o give_v their_o voice_n there_o but_o such_o only_a as_o have_v first_o swear_v obedience_n to_o he_o that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o most_o injust_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n etc._n etc._n yet_o it_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o very_a act_n of_o the_o council_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v nothing_o but_o what_o his_o predecessor_n have_v do_v and_o the_o catholic_n prince_n and_o church_n have_v approve_v in_o the_o like_a occasion_n and_o that_o though_o protestant_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o vote_n at_o trent_n fuerint_fw-la yet_o they_o be_v not_o only_o permit_v but_o invite_v in_o a_o most_o secure_a and_o civil_a manner_n by_o the_o council_n to_o reason_n dispute_n and_o debate_v their_o controversy_n and_o answer_v for_o them-selve_n and_o their_o doctrine_n and_o this_o way_n of_o proceed_v be_v no_o more_o unreasonable_a in_o a_o general_a council_n than_o it_o be_v in_o a_o parliament_n not_o to_o permit_v any_o to_o vote_n therein_o before_o he_o take_v a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n not_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o much_o less_o to_o admit_v of_o lord_n or_o commons_o accuse_v of_o treason_n or_o rebellion_n to_o sit_v in_o the_o house_n until_o they_o prove_v their_o innocency_n or_o acknowledge_v their_o fault_n and_o obtain_v their_o pardon_n by_o a_o dutiful_a submission_n and_o profession_n of_o repentance_n and_o grant_v that_o nothing_o have_v be_v resolve_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n by_o the_o father_n thereof_o but_o what_o first_o be_v canvas_v at_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o conclave_n which_o be_v false_a yet_o we_o conceive_v that_o to_o be_v no_o more_o against_o the_o constitution_n or_o freedom_n of_o a_o council_n than_o it_o be_v against_o the_o constitution_n or_o freedom_n of_o a_o parliament_n that_o no_o bill_n pass_v unto_o a_o act_n unless_o it_o be_v first_o sign_v by_o the_o king_n and_o approve_a by_o his_o council_n and_o yet_o we_o know_v that_o to_o have_v be_v the_o constant_a custom_n in_o one_o of_o his_o majesty_n kingdom_n since_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n 7._o as_o for_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n it_o be_v a_o prerogative_n so_o absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o authority_n and_o government_n of_o magistracy_n and_o the_o quiet_a and_o peace_n of_o the_o people_n govern_v that_o no_o monarchy_n or_o commonwealth_n can_v want_v it_o without_o fall_v into_o great_a inconvenience_n and_o confusion_n a_o subject_n it_o be_v true_a may_v sue_v the_o king_n but_o the_o sentence_n must_v be_v give_v in_o the_o king_n court_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n notwithstanding_o any_o object_v dependency_n or_o parciality_n of_o the_o judge_n explain_v the_o law_n and_o custom_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o sovereign_n and_o he_o who_o will_v not_o acquiesce_v in_o such_o a_o sentence_n but_o will_v needs_o have_v the_o cause_n decide_v by_o a_o foreign_a prince_n or_o people_n be_v a_o rebel_n if_o this_o be_v reasonable_a and_o just_a in_o temporal_a court_n and_o fallible_a sentence_n how_o much_o more_o in_o spiritual_a controversy_n and_o infallible_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n if_o not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v infallible_a the_o church_n can_v not_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n or_o authority_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o not_o be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v doubt_n and_o settle_v the_o inward_a peace_n of_o christian_a soul_n either_o perplex_v in_o them-selve_n or_o in_o danger_n of_o be_v pervert_v by_o other_o whether_o heretic_n or_o pagan_n neither_o of_o which_o can_v be_v indifferent_a judge_n or_o competent_a arbitrator_n between_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o her_o child_n and_o see_v doubt_n and_o difference_n be_v unavoidable_a in_o both_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o appeal_n to_o infidel_n or_o foreigner_n without_o doubt_n it_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o scripture_n to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o light_n of_o reason_n that_o parent_n and_o pastor_n be_v judge_n in_o any_o cause_n of_o their_o child_n and_o inferior_n than_o the_o contrary_a or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o judge_n at_o all_o nor_o jurisdiction_n either_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a but_o that_o which_o doctor_n cousin_n and_o all_o protestant_n most_o press_v against_o the_o judicature_n of_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v that_o they_o do_v not_o judge_n according_a to_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o right_a sense_n thereof_o whereas_o king_n and_o their_o judge_n be_v regulate_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n even_o when_o the_o suit_n be_v against_o the_o king_n or_o his_o pretend_a prerogative_n to_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o pope_n and_o counsel_n be_v as_o much_o regulate_v by_o scripture_n in_o their_o definition_n
protestancy_n a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o a_o false_a church_n and_o of_o heretic_n who_o endeavour_n say_v tertullian_n 42._o be_v not_o to_o convert_v pagan_n but_o to_o pervert_v christian_n negotium_fw-la est_fw-la illis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la non_fw-la ethnicos_fw-la convertendi_fw-la sed_fw-la nostros_fw-la evertendi_fw-la their_o success_n in_o that_o particular_a be_v no_o argument_n that_o god_n approve_v of_o their_o religion_n but_o be_v only_o a_o sign_n of_o our_o human_a frailty_n and_o perverse_a inclination_n to_o vice_n and_o liberty_n and_o they_o who_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n need_v no_o other_o miracle_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v divine_a but_o its_o propagation_n mistake_v and_o misapply_v the_o argument_n the_o miracle_n consist_v not_o in_o that_o many_o embra●●_n protestancy_n but_o rather_o in_o that_o any_o at_o all_o reject_v or_o forsake_v a_o religion_n so_o favourable_a to_o sensuality_n of_o li●●_n and_o singularity_n of_o judgement_n be_v it_o not_o a_o argument_n and_o a_o miracle_n of_o god_n special_a and_o supernatural_a grace_n that_o any_o one_o temporal_a catholic_n sovereign_n reject_v so_o absolute_a and_o advantageous_a a_o jurisdiction_n over_o these_o subject_n as_o the_o spiritual_a supremacy_n that_o bishop_n prefer_v the_o catholic_n subordination_n to_o the_o pope_n before_o the_o protestant_a equality_n that_o catholic_n priest_n contemn_v the_o convenience_n and_o co●●●nt_v which_o protestant_a minister_n find_v in_o a_o marry_a life_n 〈◊〉_d ●hat_n the_o catholic_n laity_n change_v not_o their_o wife_n or_o husband_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n 〈◊〉_d protestancy_n and_o not_o only_o contradict_v their_o sense_n in_o the_o 〈…〉_z transubstantiation_n but_o dis-own_a the_o protestant_n pretend_v right_o of_o every_o private_a person_n to_o judge_n according_a to_o his_o own_o sense_n of_o 〈…〉_z all_o controversy_n of_o christian_a religion_n a_o reformation_n so_o indulgent_a and_o oblige_v to_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o what_o ●●ate_n and_o condition_n soever_o can_v as_o little_a want_n prosely_v as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d neither_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n more_o a_o miracle_n 〈…〉_z p●●●estant_n then_o in_o the_o mahometan_a or_o any_o other_o popular_a 〈◊〉_d please_v religion_n sect_n viii_o protestant_n mistake_v in_o the_o consistency_n of_o their_o justify_v faith_n with_o justice_n or_o civil_a government_n demonstrate_v in_o the_o new_a setlement_n of_o irland_n and_o in_o the_o persecution_n against_o catholic_n in_o england_n and_o yet_o the_o king_n and_o his_o government_n vindicate_v from_o the_o note_n of_o tyranny_n or_o the_o breach_n of_o public_a faith_n because_o his_o minister_n be_v compel_v by_o a_o necessity_n of_o state_n to_o run_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n notwithstanding_o all_o which_o the_o irish_a and_o english_a roman_a catholic_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n not_o to_o attempt_v the_o recovery_n of_o their_o right_n or_o religion_n by_o arm_n but_o rather_o to_o submit_v them-selve_n to_o his_o majesty_n and_o suffer_v their_o cross_n with_o christian_a patience_n all_o protestant_n agree_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n but_o seem_v to_o differ_v in_o that_o of_o good_a work_n and_o though_o all_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n exclude_v by_o the_o pretend_a sufficiency_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o protestant_a justify_v faith_n for_o in_o what_o need_n can_v a_o man_n stand_v of_o good_a work_n if_o he_o be_v sure_a of_o his_o justification_n and_o by_o consequence_n of_o his_o salvation_n by_o only_a faith_n but_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o world_n at_o their_o dispense_n with_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n as_o thing_n not_o require_v by_o christian_n and_o clear_o infer_v from_o their_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n be_v so_o general_a that_o they_o disguise_v but_o never_o disow_v the_o doctrine_n and_o do_v yet_o stick_v to_o their_o principle_n though_o they_o dare_v not_o open_o allow_v the_o consequence_n they_o speak_v so_o spare_o in_o favour_n of_o good_a and_o gracious_a work_n that_o no_o one_o protestant_a church_n will_v attribute_v to_o they_o any_o merit_n congruity_n or_o influence_n upon_o either_o justification_n or_o salvation_n in_o so_o much_o that_o our_o prelaticks_n who_o be_v more_o moderate_a than_o any_o other_o protestant_n in_o this_o particular_a will_v not_o grant_v that_o good_a work_n be_v command_v by_o god_n as_o if_o they_o be_v depend_v of_o our_o liberty_n or_o relate_v to_o our_o endeavour_n but_o only_o be_v command_v as_o unavoidable_a effect_n flow_v necessary_o from_o a_o protestant_n and_o justify_v faith_n as_o heat_n from_o fire_n or_o fruit_n from_o the_o tree_n we_o the_o prelatic_a church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o 11._o article_n of_o its_o religion_n say_v we_o be_v account_v righteous_a before_o god_n only_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n by_o faith_n and_o not_o for_o our_o own_o work_n or_o deserve_n wherefore_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o be_v a_o most_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o very_o full_a of_o comfort_n and_o in_o the_o 12._o article_n declare_v all_o beit_n that_o good_a work_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n and_o follow_v after_o justification_n can_v not_o put_v away_o our_o sin_n and_o endure_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n judgement_n yet_o be_v they_o please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o do_v spring_n out_o necessary_o of_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n in_o so_o much_o that_o by_o they_o a_o lively_a faith_n may_v be_v as_o evident_o know_v as_o a_o tree_n discern_v by_o the_o fruit_n this_o explanation_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n mak●_n man_n as_o careless_a of_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v impossible_a or_o not_o at_o all_o requisite_a because_o we_o be_v not_o solicitous_a of_o what_o we_o be_v sure_a of_o he_o who_o be_v well_o clad_v and_o sit_v by_o a_o good_a fire_n fear_v not_o to_o be_v starve_v with_o can_v neither_o do_v he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o use_v any_o other_o exercise_n or_o diligence_n for_o keep_v him-self_n warm_a if_o therefore_o good_a work_n do_v spring_v out_o as_o necessary_o of_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n as_o heat_n from_o fire_n or_o fruit_n from_o the_o tree_n any_o protestant_n that_o suppose_v him-self_n have_v that_o faith_n need_v not_o be_v solicitous_a of_o good_a work_n they_o will_v spring_v as_o a_o necessary_a consequent_a from_o his_o faith_n but_o because_o experience_n do_v show_v that_o the_o protestant_n who_o pretend_v to_o a_o justify_v faith_n have_v not_o always_o good_a work_n and_o many_o who_o be_v not_o protestant_n exercise_v moral_a virtue_n it_o be_v further_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o 13._o article_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o protestant_n and_o confusion_n of_o papist_n that_o even_o the_o best_a moral_a work_n and_o virtue_n when_o they_o spring_v not_o of_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n be_v no_o way_n please_v to_o god_n but_o rather_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n hence_o it_o be_v our_o english_a as_o well_o as_o other_o protestant_n hold_v express_o with_o luther_n that_o good_a 176._o work_n take_v their_o goodness_n of_o the_o worker_n and_o that_o no_o work_n be_v disallow_v of_o god_n unless_o the_o author_n be_v dis-allowed_n before_o that_o sin_n be_v not_o hurtful_a to_o he_o that_o actual_o believe_v and_o therefore_o when_o the_o faithful_a do_v sin_n they_o 1338._o diminish_v not_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n all_o the_o danger_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o evell_n example_n to_o our_o neighbour_n that_o david_n when_o he_o 41._o commit_v adultery_n be_v and_o remain_v the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o sin_n be_v say_v pardon_v as_o soon_o as_o commit_v the_o believe_a protestant_n have_v receive_v forgiuness_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n past_a and_o to_o come_v and_o that_o eris_fw-la there_o be_v no_o work_n better_o than_o other_o to_o make_v water_n to_o wash_v dish_n to_o be_v a_o sour_a or_o a_o apostle_n all_o be_v one_o to_o please_v god_n that_o he_o who_o 6._o do_v once_o true_o believe_v can_v afterward_o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n or_o loose_v his_o faith_n by_o any_o sin_n and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v either_o est_fw-la perpetual_a or_o no_o faith_n what_o a_o wide_a gap_n be_v open_v by_o this_o wicked_a doctrine_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o vice_n libertinism_n and_o rebellion_n be_v more_o visible_a in_o itself_o then_o consider_v by_o well_o meaning_n protestant_n who_o may_v tax_v the_o most_o dissolute_a of_o their_o brethren_n with_o be_v evil_a christian_o but_o must_v withal_o confess_v they_o to_o be_v good_a protestant_n as_o not_o violate_v the_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n by_o which_o they_o be_v encourage_v to_o justify_v the_o most_o wicked_a action_n by_o
as_o a_o essential_a requisite_a the_o undoubted_a assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o church_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o protestancy_n necessary_o suppose_v fallibility_n or_o possibility_n of_o error_n in_o that_o same_o church_n and_o proposal_n christian_a faith_n be_v there_o by_o render_v impossible_a and_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n demonstrate_v 〈◊〉_d be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o catholic_n religion_n with_o the_o certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n church_n neither_o be_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n in_o this_o particular_a less_o consistent_a with_o christian_a charity_n and_o humility_n then_o with_o catholic_n faith_n for_o what_o judgement_n can_v be_v more_o rash_a injurious_a and_o contrary_a to_o christian_a charity_n then_o to_o assert_v that_o so_o many_o holy_a and_o learned_a doctor_n as_o have_v be_v and_o be_v confess_v papist_n and_o even_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n for_o the_o space_n at_o least_o of_o 1000_o year_n can_v either_o ignorant_o mistake_v or_o will_v wilful_o forsake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n so_o clear_o shine_v in_o scripture_n as_o every_o petty_a protestant_n do_v pretend_v or_o what_o be_v more_o repugnant_a 〈◊〉_d christian_a modesty_n and_o humility_n than_o that_o homely_a doctor_n and_o half_a witted_a wit_n shall_v prefer_v their_o own_o private_a opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o common_a consent_n and_o belief_n of_o 〈◊〉_d father_n of_o the_o church_n the_o definition_n of_o general_a counsel_n the_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n of_o so_o many_o age_n it_o be_v both_o a_o ridiculous_a and_o sad_a spectacle_n to_o see_v how_o every_o student_n of_o the_o university_n that_o have_v learn'●_n to_o construe_v 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d or_o to_o quibble_n or_o scribble_v somewhat_o in_o greek_a english_a or_o latin_a take_v upon_o he_o to_o talk_v of_o religion_n and_o to_o censure_v st._n 〈◊〉_d st._n austin_n st._n christian_a &c._n &c._n and_o contemn_v both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a catholic_n author_n prefer_v before_o the_o whole_a church_n him-self_n and_o his_o po●antick_a tutor_n or_o fellow_n of_o oxford_n and_o cambrige_n college_n nay_o the_o illiterate_a people_n even_o the_o woman_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o height_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n a_o infallible_a 〈◊〉_d of_o heresy_n that_o they_o pity_v our_o popish_a ignorance_n and_o fancy_n they_o can_v 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o text_n of_o their_o english_a bibles_n false_o translate_v and_o fond_o interpret_v the_o great_a roman_n divine_n so_o true_a be_v the_o say_n of_o st._n hierom_n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la paulinum_n scripture_n be_v the_o only_a art_n which_o all_o people_n teach_v before_o they_o have_v learn_v the_o prattle_a woman_n the_o old_a dote_a man_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o advers._fw-la lucifer_n bid_v man_n not_o flatter_v them-selve_n with_o quote_v scripture_n to_o confirm_v their_o opinion_n see_v the_o devil_n him-self_n make_v use_v of_o god_n word_n which_o consist_v more_o in_o the_o sense_n then_o in_o the_o letter_n how_o impossible_a be_v it_o to_o govern_v peaceable_o so_o prattle_v and_o presume_v a_o protestant_a multitude_n either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n be_v too_o manifest_a by_o the_o last_o experience_n in_o england_n where_o the_o endeavour_n of_o reduce_v this_o protestant_a arrogancy_n to_o some_o kind_n of_o reason_n be_v the_o occasion_n and_o object_n of_o the_o rebellion_n king_n charles_n i._n and_o his_o council_n for_o attempt_v to_o make_v the_o inferior_n subordinat_a to_o their_o superior_n in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n and_o the_o subject_n obedient_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n be_v asperse_v as_o papist_n and_o destroy_v as_o enemy_n to_o the_o evangelical_n liberty_n of_o protestancy_n and_o as_o subverter_n of_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n popish_a rebellion_n happen_v because_o the_o promotor_n thereof_o fall_v from_o that_o fervour_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o devotion_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o practice_v but_o the_o english_a protestant_a rebellion_n be_v raise_v and_o continue_v by_o the_o most_o devout_a pure_a fervent_a and_o zealous_a sort_n of_o protestant_n in_o persuance_n and_o maintenance_n of_o their_o religion_n other_o rebellion_n be_v common_o unexpected_a chance_n spring_v from_o a_o sudden_a fury_n or_o fear_v of_o desperate_a people_n but_o the_o late_a rebellion_n be_v and_o be_v to_o this_o day_n pretend_v by_o many_o to_o have_v be_v a_o pious_a and_o sober_a proceed_n the_o king_n murder_n only_o except_v of_o the_o prudent_a and_o religious_a man_n of_o the_o nation_n assemble_v in_o parliament_n and_o be_v so_o justifiable_a by_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n that_o he_o must_v be_v think_v not_o only_o a_o wise_a but_o a_o fortunate_a king_n of_o england_n that_o can_v prevent_v or_o suppress_v the_o like_a revolution_n in_o his_o reign_n so_o long_o as_o protestancy_n do_v reign_v with_o he_o the_o reason_n be_v as_o manifest_a as_o the_o experience_n and_o the_o cause_n as_o the_o effect_n for_o if_o a_o commonwealth_n be_v so_o institute_v that_o every_o private_a person_n may_v pretend_v by_o his_o birthright_n or_o privilege_n to_o admit_v of_o no_o other_o judge_n or_o interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n but_o him-self_n or_o at_o least_o may_v lawful_o and_o lega_o appeal_v from_o all_o court_n of_o judicature_n even_o from_o the_o high_a which_o be_v the_o parliament_n to_o his_o own_o private_a judgement_n what_o intolerable_a confusion_n will_v it_o breed_v what_o justice_n subordination_n peace_n propriety_n or_o prosperity_n can_v be_v expect_v in_o such_o a_o government_n the_o same_o law_n and_o authority_n which_o ought_v to_o decide_v all_o difference_n will_v be_v the_o subject_n and_o occasion_n of_o perpetual_a quarrel_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n and_o constitution_n of_o protestant_a church_n and_o state_n every_o private_a person_n be_v a_o supreme_a judge_n of_o religion_n and_o sole_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n he_o may_v appeal_v both_o from_o sovereign_n and_o bishop_n from_o their_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o his_o own_o private_a judgement_n or_o spirit_n and_o him-self_n must_v determine_v the_o difference_n and_o conclude_v whether_o the_o decree_n of_o church_n and_o state_n be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n that_o be_v to_o his_o own_o interpretation_n thereof_o which_o common_o be_v bias_v by_o private_a interest_n or_o some_o singular_a fancy_n of_o his_o own_o and_o though_o the_o governor_n and_o clergy_n of_o his_o church_n and_o country_n tell_v he_o he_o ought_v to_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n and_o submit_v the_o same_o to_o 〈◊〉_d parliament_n or_o to_o a_o general_a council_n not_o like_o that_o of_o trent_n but_o to_o one_o compose_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o christian_a congregation_n call_v by_o the_o joint_a authority_n of_o all_o temporal_a prince_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o must_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o member_n when_o they_o inculcat_fw-la this_o lesson_n unto_o a_o zealous_a protestant's_n 〈…〉_z not_o so_o simple_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o who_o read_v this_o 〈◊〉_d speak_v as_o they_o think_v or_o that_o they_o believe_v any_o such_o general_a council_n be_v possible_a for_o that_o every_o 〈◊〉_d know_v temporal_a prince_n will_v never_o agree_v about_o the_o precedent_n time_n place_n and_o other_o circumstance_n of_o such_o a_o counceil_n and_o though_o they_o shall_v and_o the_o turck_n and_o other_o infidel_n give_v way_n to_o such_o a_o suspicious_a assembly_n of_o christian_n yet_o when_o they_o m●t●_n nothing_o can_v be_v resolve_v ●or_a want_n of_o their_o agreement_n in_o a_o 〈◊〉_d of_o judge_v of_o controversy_n every_o sect_n ●●icking_v to_o it_o be_v own_o principle_n and_o proper_a sense_n of_o scripture_n so_o tha●_n every_o protestant_n understand_v the_o design_n of_o this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v but_o a_o fetch_n of_o their_o own_o clergy_n to_o make_v it-self_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n sol●_n judge_n of_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n and_o privilege_n of_o protestancy_n and_o therefore_o laugh_v at_o the_o folly_n of_o such_o a_o proposal_n and_o pretext_n we_o roman_a catholic_n need_v no_o such_o device_n nor_o delay_n we_o be_v content_a to_o submit_v to_o such_o general_a counsel_n as_o may_v be_v have_v our_o pope_n and_o counsel_n define_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n of_o the_o true_a church_n our_o censure_n must_v suppose_v know_v cause_n and_o crime_n and_o if_o with_o all_o these_o caution_n the_o pop_n spiritual_a jurisdiction_n be_v think_v to_o be_v so_o dangerous_a to_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o king_n and_o peace_n of_o subject_n least_o forsooth_o it_o may_v be_v indirect_o apply_v to_o temporal_a matter_n that_o all_o protestant_n upon_o that_o score_n renounce_v the_o papal_a authority_n with_o how_o much_o more_o reason_n
be_v now_o superfluous_a and_o disrespectful_a to_o the_o royal_a family_n that_o reign_v but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o honour_n to_o know_v he_o best_o assure_v we_o his_o l●p_n be_v no_o great_a friend_n to_o papists_n last_o whosoever_o will_v call_v unto_o mind_n the_o mis-chief_a which_o but_o a_o few_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o of_o the_o long_a parliament_n wrought_v against_o the_o late_a king_n and_o will_v observe_v how_o popular_a other_o of_o the_o same_o stamp_n be_v now_o and_o how_o apt_a the_o giddy_a multitude_n be_v to_o be_v fool_v again_o into_o rebellion_n by_o the_o like_a mad_a zeal_n against_o popery_n will_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o not_o any_o on_o thing_n can_v be_v of_o so_o great_a prejudice_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o england_n as_o the_o continuance_n of_o law_n which_o if_o execute_v make_v the_o nation_n and_o government_n subsect_v ii_o queen_n ave-mary_n and_o the_o inquisition_n severity_n against_o protestancy_n can_v be_v no_o precedent_n or_o excuse_n for_o the_o statute_n against_o popery_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o matter_n with_o answer_v the_o vulgar_a objection_n make_v for_o vindication_n of_o the_o penal_a and_o sanguinary_a law_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n against_o roman_a catholic_n ground_v upon_o a_o parity_n of_o the_o like_a law_n execute_v by_o queen_n mary_n and_o the_o jnquisition_n against_o protestant_n the_o disparity_n will_v discover_v the_o fallacy_n and_o dissolve_v the_o force_n of_o their_o argument_n neither_o queen_n mary_n nor_o the_o jnquisition_n make_v any_o law_n against_o protestant_n they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n and_o accept_v by_o all_o catholic_n king_n into_o the_o statute_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o confirm_v by_o their_o parliament_n the_o ancient_a christian_a sovereign_n not_o only_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v the_o apostolic_a but_o find_v by_o experience_n the_o same_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n have_v peaceable_a principle_n agreabl●●o_o just_a government_n and_o therefore_o they_o enact_v law_n of_o death_n infamy_n confiscation_n of_o good_n &c._n &c._n against_o all_o such_o as_o presume_v to_o alter_v that_o doctrine_n declare_v such_o as_o contradict_v the_o tenet_n thereof_o to_o be_v innovator_n and_o heretic_n when_o protestancy_n begin_v in_o england_n they_o who_o preach_v the_o new_a doctrine_n be_v conscious_a of_o their_o own_o guilt_n and_o of_o have_v incur_v the_o penalty_n of_o these_o ancient_a christian_a law_n then_o in_o force_n against_o innovator_n and_o heretic_n and_o in_o particular_a against_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n with_o nun_n proceed_v otherwise_o zozomen_fw-fr hist._n lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o affirm_v how_o that_o the_o christian_a emperor_n jovinian_a who_o be_v in_o course_n the_o three_o emperor_n after_o constantin_n the_o great_a publish_v a_o edict_n that_o who_o allure_v a_o nun_n to_o marriage_n shall_v be_v therefore_o punish_v with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o head_n and_o this_o law_n be_v yet_o extant_a c●d_v l._n de_fw-fr episcopis_fw-la &_o c●●ricis_fw-la but_o they_o i_o say_v petitio_fw-la to_o the_o parliament_n of_o edward●_n ●_z to_o have_v those_o 〈◊〉_d repeal_v whereby_o you_o may_v see_v how_o they_o acknowledge_v their_o own_o doctrine_n be_v heresy_n whereupon_o they_o wer●_n dispense_v with_o to_o marry_v and_o all_o the_o 〈◊〉_d law_n against_o her●tick●_n and_o heresy_n be_v repeal_v queen_n mary_n succeed_v restore_v the_o ancient_a law_n that_o have_v be_v repeal_v by_o king_n ed●●●d_v 6._o together_o with_o the_o ancient_a religion_n but_o she_o be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o they_o as_o queen_n elizabeth_z be_v of_o the_o penal_a and_o sanguinary_a statute_n against_o priest_n and_o roman_a catholic_n which_o never_o have_v be_v hear_v of_o before_o her_o time_n in_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n or_o commonwealth_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o inquisition_n ma●●_n no_o new_a law_n against_o protestant_n neither_o do_v they_o sentence_v they_o to_o death_n they_o only_a declare_v that_o they_o be_v innovator_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n doctrine_n or_o heretic_n and_o then_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n do_v execute_v the_o temporal_a law_n in_o fo●●e_n against_o such_o person_n if_o protestant_n have_v not_o find_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n why_o be_v they_o so_o solicitious_a to_o have_v the_o lawe●_n ●hat_n have_v be_v ●●acted_v against_o heretic_n not_o late_o but_o during_o those_o ven●●●ble_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pri●●tive_a church_n repeal_v why_o do_v 〈…〉_z if_o their_o doct●●●_n be_v the_o ●●me_n with_o that_o of_o ●he_n ancient_a father_n that_o live_v in_o time_n wherein_o the_o imperial_a law_n be_v make_v and_o in_o force_n what_o need_v they_o to_o except_v against_o law_n which_o have_v be_v enact_v to_o favour_v the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o father_n with_o who_o they_o pretend_v to_o agree_v queen_n marry_o therefore_o and_o the_o inquisition_n who_o proceed_v ac●_n willing_a to_o those_o ancient_a ●●wes_n against_o protestant_n do_v nothing_o but_o what_o all_o christian_a and_o catholic_n emperor_n and_o king_n have_v do_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 1300._o year_n against_o heretic_n but_o queen_n elizabeth_n take_v the_o quite_o contrary_a way_n she_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n as_o also_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a and_o modern_a law_n of_o england_n herself_o can_v not_o enjoy_v the_o crown_n have_v be_v declare_v illegitimat_fw-la by_o sundry_a act_n of_o parliament_n never_o repeal_v nor_o the_o steward_n be_v exclude_v they_o be_v the_o lawful_a and_o immediate_a heir_n and_o because_o the_o queen_n of_o scot_n from_o who_o they_o derive_v their_o title_n be_v a_o catholic_n queen_n elizabeth_n make_v herself_n and_o england_n protestant_n that_o be_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n she_o declare_v that_o all_o the_o catholic_n emperor_n king_n and_o church_n of_o the_o world_n for_o almost_o 1300._o year_n have_v be_v superstitious_a and_o idolatrous_a that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v antichrist_n the_o catholic_n clergy_n cheat_n the_o sea_n of_o rome_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n spiritual_a jurisdiction_n a_o she_o and_o secular_a supremacy_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n a_o blasphemy_n five_o of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n human_a invention_n and_o corrupt_v follow_v of_o the_o apostle_n priesthood_n and_o episcopacy_n nothing_o but_o a_o lay_v ministry_n authorise_v under_o the_o sovereign_n great_a se●le_n all_o lawful_a priest_n and_o bishop_n traitor_n all_o catholic_n heretic_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o these_o absurdity_n be_v make_v legal_a in_o england_n to_o make_v her_o father_n marriage_n with_o anne_n bullen_n seem_v lawful_a whereas_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v null_a and_o invalid_a by_o so_o many_o parliament_n of_o england_n that_o herself_o dare_v not_o attempt_v a_o immediate_a and_o clear_a repeal_n of_o act_n so_o notorious_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o right_n that_o herself_o pretend_v ●o_o the_o crown_n t●at_fw-mi 〈…〉_z and_o man_n who_o expect_a favour_n from_o she_o shall_v so_o metamorphose_v sacred_a thing_n into_o profane_a scripture_n into_o fancy_n and_o illegitimacy_n into_o legitimacy_n we_o do_v no●_n admire_v neither_o be_v it_o strange_a that_o illiterate_a people_n after_o a_o century_n of_o year_n continuance_n and_o education_n in_o such_o a_o religion_n shall_v be_v zealous_a in_o the_o maintenance_n thereof_o or_o that_o a_o clergy_n which_o have_v no_o other_o livelihood_n nor_o hope_n of_o promotion_n but_o by_o justify_v these_o proceed_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o continue_v her_o law_n against_o orthodox_n christianity_n and_o the_o know_a truth_n for_o their_o own_o interest_n be_v frailty_n incident_a to_o man_n but_o that_o the_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n of_o england_n be_v so_o well_o verse_v in_o their_o own_o chronikles_n and_o in_o the_o history_n of_o other_o nation_n that_o person_n of_o so_o much_o wit_n knowledge_n and_o judgement_n shall_v not_o when_o they_o meet_v in_o parliament_n move_z and_o resolve_v to_o restore_v christianity_n and_o rectify_v so_o gross_a and_o vulgar_a mistake_n especial_o since_o the_o family_n against_o who_o succession_n the_o statute_n have_v be_v introduce_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o crown_n this_o 〈◊〉_d or_o oblivion_n i_o say_v of_o the_o english_a 〈◊〉_d and_o nobility_n i●_n hardly_o excusable_a and_o if_o the_o 〈◊〉_d will_v not_o be_v move_v out_o of_o charity_n to_o their_o fellow_n subject_n and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o abolish_v the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a law_n against_o roman_a catholic_n let_v they_o do_v it_o out_o of_o civility_n to_o the_o royal_a family_n against_o who_o party_n and_o title_n so_o injust_a law_n be_v ●●acted_v there_o be_v not_o therefore_o any_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d more_o queen_n elizabeth_n penal_a statute_n then_o to_o compare_v 〈◊〉_d wi●h_a queen_n mari●●_n and_o the_o inquisition_n proceed_n against_o protestant_n it_o be_v now_o time_n that_o we_o pass_v from_o the_o examination_n of_o
false_a deal_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n civility_n be_v a_o branch_n of_o charity_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o all_o man_n but_o if_o a_o man_n do_v observe_v either_o in_o church_n or_o court_n that_o a_o disguise_a cutpurse_n o●_n cutthroat_n do_v great_a mischief_n i_o be_o of_o opinion_n the_o observer_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o advertise_v both_o church_n and_o court_n of_o his_o villainy_n and_o without_o any_o ceremony_n to_o tell_v every_o one_o down_o right_a such_o a_o person_n that_o you_o take_v for_o a_o nobleman_n or_o gentleman_n be_v a_o cheat_n and_o a_o murderer_n therefore_o trust_v he_o not_o avoid_v his_o company_n if_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n teach_v and_o countenance_v false_a and_o damnable_a doctrine_n they_o be_v cutpurse_n and_o cut-throaths_a they_o exhaust_v the_o treasure_n of_o these_o kingdom_n and_o cheat_v the_o king_n and_o his_o subject_n of_o a_o very_a great_a revenue_n they_o and_o write_v a_o book_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n 593._o in_o edward_n the_o sixt_n time_n he_o profess_a protestancy_n and_o write_v against_o the_o real_a presence_n both_o which_o book_n bishop_n bonner_n produce_v in_o judgement_n against_o he_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o young_a king_n reign_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o lutheran_n but_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n thereof_o a_o zuinglian_a and_o alter_v according_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n which_o himself_o have_v compose_v and_o change_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o humour_n of_o that_o faction_n which_o prevail_v in_o the_o state_n he_o make_v no_o more_o conscience_n of_o condemn_v to_o death_n a_o ascue_n for_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n a_o 31._o of_o k._n henry_n 8._o then_o of_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v of_o her_o belief_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o k._n edward_n 6._o and_o press_v that_o young_a king_n very_o importune_o to_o seal_v a_o warrant_n for_o burn_v of_o her_o maid_n joane_n of_o kent_n alias_o joane_n knell_n for_o that_o she_o deny_v christ_n take_v flesh_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n but_o joan_n knell_n when_o cranmer_n pronounce_v sentence_n against_o she_o reproach_v he_o for_o his_o inconstancy_n in_o religion_n tell_v that_o he_o condemn_v not_o long_o before_o a_o ascue_n her_o mistress_n for_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n and_o now_o condemn_v herself_o for_o a_o pecce_fw-la of_o flesh_n and_o as_o he_o be_v now_o come_v to_o believe_v the_o first_o which_o he_o then_o have_v condemn_v so_o will_v he_o come_v in_o time_n to_o believe_v the_o second_o etc._n etc._n and_o 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o cranmer_n persuade_v the_o king_n to_o sign_v the_o warrant_n against_o joane_n knell_n when_o there_o be_v no_o law_n in_o england_n to_o put_v any_o one_o to_o death_n for_o heresy_n because_o it_o be_v after_o that_o all_o penal_a statute_n against_o heretic_n have_v be_v repeal_v and_o that_o favour_n be_v grant_v at_o cranmer_n and_o the_o first_o reformer_n own_o request_n and_o solicitation_n not_o dare_v to_o profess_v or_o preach_v their_o novelty_n before_o they_o may_v be_v secure_v by_o such_o a_o repeal_n from_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o law_n we_o have_v see_v heretofore_o how_o he_o divorce_v k._n henry_n from_o q._n catherine_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o marry_v he_o to_o a_o bullen_n and_o afterwar●●●clared_v in_o parliament_n that_o a_o bullen_n be_v not_o true_a wife_n to_o 〈◊〉_d king_n how_o he_o marry_v he_o to_o a_o of_o cleve_n 1536_o and_o with_o in_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o year_n come_v again_o to_o the_o parliament_n and_o say_v she_o be_v never_o true_a wife_n to_o his_o majesty_n in_o again_o 1._o and_o this_o be_v object_v by_o nicolas_n heath_n archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n against_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o protestancy_n 1._o eliz._n which_o speech_n say_v learned_a knot_n in_o his_o comment_n upon_o brerely_a p._n 87._o be_v read_v by_o he_o who_o tell_v this_o to_o knot_n and_o have_v see_v divers_a of_o king_n edward●_n ●_z service_n book_n some_z with_o be_v some_o with_o signify_v and_o some_o with_o a_o blank_a in_o the_o place_n last_o how_o can_v cranmer_n how_o can_v they_o tha●●oyned_v with_o he_o be_v ignorant_a that_o th●●r_o reform_a doctrine_n be_v plain_a heresy_n see_v they_o kn●w_v it_o be_v notorious_a novelty_n and_o that_o many_o point_n thereof_o have_v be_v condemn_v as_o heretical_a by_o the_o primitive_a catholic_n church_n and_o by_o law_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n emperor_n how_o can_v they_o excuse_v the_o abolish_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o their_o common_a prayer_n and_o the_o character_n of_o priesthood_n and_o episcopacy_n by_o devise_v a_o new_a form_n of_o ordination_n contai_v 〈◊〉_d a_o syllable_n express_v the_o function_n either_o of_o priest_n or_o bishop_n contrary_a to_o all_o form_n and_o rituall_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a latin_a and_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n 〈◊〉_d though_o their_o successor_n since_o his_o majesty_n restauration_n have_v acknowledge_v the_o invalidity_n of_o their_o protestant_a form_n of_o ordination_n by_o amend_v they_o in_o their_o new_a book_n authorize_v by_o the_o late_a act_n of_o uniformity_n for_o the_o form_n of_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n be_v correct_v thus_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n and_o work_n of_o a_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n the_o form_n of_o ordain_v a_o priest_n thus_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n etc._n etc._n yet_o this_o correct_v come_v too_o late_o for_o the_o past_a ordination_n and_o unreasonable_o for_o the_o future_a also_o because_o none_o can_v give_v a_o priestly_a or_o episcopal_a character_n which_o himself_o have_v not_o and_o though_o the_o form_n thus_o alter_v in_o their_o late_a edition_n be_v valid_a in_o itself_o yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v valid_o apply_v by_o layman_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o by_o minister_n ordain_v by_o a_o invalid_a form_n what_o can_v move_v the_o present_a prelatik_a church_n of_o england_n to_o change_v their_o form_n of_o ordain_v priest_n and_o bishop_n after_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o above_o but_o the_o evidence_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o its_o nullity_n especial_o if_o we_o consider_v with_o what_o in_o preach_v be_v extol_v by_o fox_n and_o yet_o if_o you_o observe_v his_o proof_n thereof_o you_o will_v find_v that_o he_o be_v rather_o a_o comedian_n then_o a_o christian_a in_o the_o pulpit_n where_o in_o steed_n of_o solid_a discourse_n deduce_v from_o scripture_n and_o father_n he_o entertain_v his_o audience_n with_o scurilous_a jest_n and_o some_o time_n ground_v his_o sermon_n upon_o a_o play_n at_o card_n and_o keep_v great_a stir_n with_o the_o king_n of_o club_n the_o ace_n of_o heart_n and_o the_o like_a foolish_a ●taff●_n good_a enough_o for_o the_o heresy_n he_o display_v other_o time_n 〈◊〉_d raise_v at_o the_o ●ass_n call_v the_o real_a presence_n the_o marrowbone_n 〈◊〉_d ●nd_n this_o so_o ridiculous_o that_o none_o but_o child_n applaud_v 〈◊〉_d profane_a way_n of_o preach_v by_o what_o fox_n himself_o con●ess●●_n 〈◊〉_d his_o way_n you_o may_v fancy_v he_o to_o be_v another_o hugh_n p●●●●_n but_o from_o his_o sermon_n let_v we_o go_v to_o his_o virtue_n notwithstanding_o his_o great_a zeal_n in_o preach_v and_o promote_a the_o 〈…〉_z recant_v his_o doctrine_n thereof_o twice_o once_o before_o card●●●l_v 〈…〉_z second_o time_n before_o archbishop_n warham_n and_o other_o 〈◊〉_d k._n henry_n 8._o declare_v against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o procurement_n of_o his_o vicar_n general_n 〈…〉_z of_o his_o phisi●●an_n d._n r_o butte●_n be_v name_v to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o 〈◊〉_d but_o soon_o deprive_v thereof_o by_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d as_o a_o unguilty_a and_o profane_a fellow_n his_o impiety_n be_v prove_v by_o many_o instance_n whereof_o one_o be_v eat_v of_o flesh_n on_o good_a friday_n without_o any_o pretext_n of_o sickness_n after_o king_n henry_n 8._o 〈◊〉_d he_o side_v with_o hooper_n and_o rogers_n for_o puritanisme_n against_o cranmer_n and_o ridley_n who_o be_v then_o great_a stikler_n for_o the_o prelatic_a discipline_n thereby_o to_o domineer_v over_o the_o minister_n who_o have_v be_v in_o germany_n and_o so_o will_v latimer_n also_o if_o they_o both_o have_v not_o oppose_v his_o restitution_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o worces●●●_n thus_o keep_v under_o by_o his_o two_o great_a adversary_n he_o 〈◊〉_d think_v by_o the_o duchess_n of_o somersett_n a_o likely_a person_n in_o hope_n of_o recover_v his_o ancient_a dignity_n and_o reverence_n to_o inveigh_v against_o her_o brother_n in_o law_n the_o lord_n admiral_n who_o she_o morta_o hate_v and_o to_o reprehend_v public_o in_o the_o pulpit_n his_o ambition_n charge_v he_o also_o with_o dangerous_a
can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v admit_v but_o however_o though_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o begin_v with_o such_o beggarly_a rudiment_n yet_o it_o behoove_v the_o learned_a grave_a and_o godly_a minister_n of_o christ_n to_o endeavour_v far_o and_o set_v forth_o something_o more_o refined_a from_o filth_n and_o uncleaness_n how_o great_a a_o cheat_n calvin_n be_v have_v be_v partly_o say_v heretofore_o but_o whosoever_o desire_v to_o be_v full_o inform_v of_o his_o particular_a villainy_n and_o hypocrisy_n let_v he_o read_v his_o life_n write_v by_o jerom_n bolseck_n anno_fw-la 1577._o there_o he_o will_v find_v how_o calvin_n continue_v to_o practice_v his_o execrable_a sodomy_n adultery_n etc._n etc._n how_o he_o compass_v the_o heretic_n servetus_n his_o death_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o heresy_n though_o calvin_n him-self_n write_v a_o book_n a_o little_a before_o to_o prove_v that_o no_o heretic_n ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o his_o religion_n but_o the_o true_a cause_n o●_n his_o quarrel_n to_o servetus_n be_v the_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n that_o servetus_n have_v discover_v in_o calvin_n institution_n and_o publish_v they_o how_o he_o banish_v from_o geneva_n divers_a minister_n and_o gentleman_n that_o do_v not_o favour_v his_o way_n and_o how_o he_o forge_a letter_n and_o suborn_v a_o italian_a to_o make_v peter_n wald●●●●●_n and_o the_o bal●asars_n traitor_n but_o they_o clear_v them-selve_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o bern_n give_v public_a testimony_n of_o their_o innocency_n and_o of_o calvin_n knavery_n how_o this_o cheat_n to_o make_v him-self_n famous_a devise_v divers_a letter_n and_o other_o work_n in_o praise_n of_o him-self_n and_o publish_v they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o one_o galatius_n and_o other_o but_o peter_n veretus_n minister_n of_o lausa●a_n find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o threaten_v to_o discredit_v calvin_n who_o to_o pacify_v veretus_n write_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v expedient_a by_o such_o mean_n to_o get_v in_o credit_n for_o their_o cause_n and_o that_o he_o mean_v short_o to_o do_v as_o much_o in_o the_o commendation_n of_o he_o and_o farellus_n also_o and_o so_o stop_v his_o mouth_n how_o calvin_n after_o that_o he_o have_v break_v and_o deface_v the_o jmage_n of_o christ_n and_o saint_n in_o geneva_n cause_v his_o own_o picture_n to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o divers_a place_n and_o use_v also_o to_o give_v little_a picture_n and_o image_n of_o him-self_n to_o gentlewoman_n and_o gentleman_n to_o carry_v about_o their_o neck_n and_o when_o on_o tell_v he_o that_o some_o think_v much_o of_o this_o he_o answer_v he_o that_o can_v abide_v it_o let_v he_o burst_v for_o envy_n and_o twenty_o more_o the_o like_a but_o from_o their_o apostle_n calvin_n let_v we_o return_v to_o his_o flock_n the_o english_a exile_v clergy_n this_o sentence_n of_o calvin_n say_v heylin_n be_v of_o such_o prevalency_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o party_n 61._o that_o such_o who_o former_o do_v approve_v do_v afterward_o as_o much_o dislike_n the_o english_a liturgy_n and_o those_o who_o at_o first_o have_v conceive_v only_o a_o dislike_n grow_v afterward_o into_o a_o open_a detestation_n of_o it_o but_o in_o the_o end_n to_o give_v content_a to_o such_o as_o remain_v affect_v to_o the_o former_a liturgy_n it_o be_v agree_v upon_o that_o a_o mix_a form_n consist_v partly_o of_o the_o order_n of_o geneva_n and_o partly_o of_o the_o book_n of_o england_n shall_v be_v digest_v and_o receive_v till_o the_o first_o of_o april_n consideration_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o be_v have_v of_o some_o other_o course_n which_o shall_v be_v permanent_a and_o oblige_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v here_o the_o reader_n may_v observe_v the_o hypocrisy_n and_o impiety_n of_o this_o protestant_a cler●●_n in_o england_n they_o impose_v this_o liturgy_n upon_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n as_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o work_n be_v pretend_v to_o have_v be_v compose_v by_o the_o assistence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n word_n of_o the_o statut_fw-la whereby_o it_o be_v make_v legal_a and_o thousand_o of_o catholic_n be_v slay_v in_o many_o shire_n of_o england_n by_o the_o protector_n be_v force_n because_o they_o will_v no●_n accept_v of_o it_o in_o steed_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o now_o they_o who_o preach_v and_o press_v this_o violence_n against_o recusant_n contemn_v and_o reject_v their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o crown_n these_o very_a man_n who_o in_o germany_n have_v so_o often_o change_v and_o condemn_v their_o english_a liturgy_n and_o religion_n now_o to_o become_v bishop_n turn_v again_o in_o england_n with_o the_o time_n and_o be_v the_o chief_a 〈◊〉_d of_o that_o church_n marry_o horn_n be_v name_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o winchester_n grindal_n to_o that_o of_o london_n sandys_n to_o worcester_n parkhurst_n to_o norwich_n and_o whitehead_n be_v offer_v if_o you_o believe_v heylin_n the_o archbishopric_n of_o canterbury_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v thus_o exalt_v be_v never_o content_v until_o they_o have_v penal_a and_o sanguinary_a statute_n enact_v against_o priest_n and_o popish_a recusant_n for_o not_o conform_v to_o that_o doctrine_n and_o liturgy_n these_o godly_a prelate_n have_v so_o much_o slight_v and_o alter_v in_o germany_n and_o postpone_v to_o calvin_n discipline_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v the_o same_o or_o worse_a again_o in_o england_n if_o occasion_n have_v be_v offer_v after_o that_o the_o english_a liturgy_n have_v be_v thus_o forsake_v and_o despise_v in_o germany_n d._n r_o k●x_n who_o have_v be_v schoolmaster_n and_o almon●er_n to_o king_n edward_n 6._o arrive_v at_o frankford_n and_o can_v with_o no_o patience_n say_v heylin_n endure_v the_o rejection_n of_o that_o liturgy_n in_o the_o draw_v up_o whereof_o him-self_n have_v a_o principal_a hand_n and_o therefore_o disturb_v the_o new_a discipline_n wittingham_n and_o knox_n procure_v a_o order_n from_o the_o magistrate_n against_o kox_n his_o des●ign_n but_o kox_n accuse_v knox_n for_o treason_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o therefore_o knox_n be_v command_v by_o the_o senate_n to_o depart_v from_o frankford_n kox_n procure_v whitehead_n to_o be_v choose_v for_o the_o principal_a pastor_n appoint_v two_o minister_n for_o elder_n and_o four_o deacon_n for_o assistant_n then_o give_v a_o account_n to_o calvin_n excuse_v him-self_n that_o he_o have_v proceed_v so_o far_o without_o his_o consent_n by_o the_o way_n you_o may_v see_v that_o kox_n be_v then_o a_o good_a calvinist_n in_o discipline_n though_o afterward_o he_o become_v a_o prelatic_a 1._o eliz._n when_o he_o get_v the_o bishopric_n of_o ely_n whitehead_n not_o able_a to_o rule_v such_o a_o contentious_a congregation_n resign_v his_o place_n to_o horn_n between_o who_o and_o on_o ashley_n be_v such_o faction_n and_o division_n that_o horn_n with_o his_o elder_n be_v force_v to_o forsake_v their_o office_n and_o ashleys_n party_n get_v the_o better_a 63._o and_o compose_v a_o book_n of_o discipline_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n whereof_o the_o congregation_n be_v govern_v the_o magistrate_n not_o able_a to_o agree_v the_o difference_n send_v for_o cox_n and_o sandys_n to_o compose_v it_o but_o to_o no_o purpose_n they_o who_o stand_v for_o ashley_n new_a discipline_n get_v the_o power_n into_o their_o hand_n whereupon_o horn_n and_o chamber_n depart_v to_o strazburg_n such_o be_v the_o trouble_n and_o disorder_n say_v heylin_n in_o the_o church_n of_o frankford_n occasion_v first_o by_o a_o dislike_n of_o their_o public_a liturgy_n before_o which_o they_o prefer_v the_o nakedness_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o french_a and_o genevian_a church_n and_o afterward_o continue_v by_o the_o opposition_n make_v by_o the_o general_a body_n of_o the_o congregation_n against_o such_o as_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v pastor_n and_o ruler_n over_o they_o an_o other_o argument_n of_o the_o sincerity_n and_o religion_n of_o this_o clergy_n be_v that_o during_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n in_o england_n they_o teach_v and_o print_v that_o the_o government_n of_o woman_n be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o not_o to_o be_v endure_v by_o christian_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o she_o die_v they_o write_v and_o preach_v the_o quite_o contrary_a in_o favour_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n who_o they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o make_v temporal_a head_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n but_o supreme_a governess_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o spiritual_a affair_n we_o have_v see_v their_o proceed_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n now_o to_o queen_n elizabeth_n sect_n iu._n abominable_a fraud_n and_o wilful_a falsification_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n to_o maintain_v their_o doctrine_n set_v forth_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o apology_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n after_o that_o queen_n elizabeth_n by_o give_v hope_n
subordination_n the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v reveal_v so_o that_o succession_n which_o by_o all_o the_o ancient_a and_o holy_a doctor_n be_v believe_v and_o defend_v to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v affirm_v by_o jewel_n and_o the_o first_o protestant_n bishop_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o antichrist_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o their_o non_fw-la sense_n they_o be_v please_v to_o falsify_v scripture_n and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v because_o they_o know_v them-selve_n want_v succession_n and_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n and_o be_v make_v bishop_n only_o by_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n and_o dispensation_n with_o the_o inhability_n of_o their_o very_a state_n and_o condition_n and_o legitimate_a or_o make_v legal_a by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n 8._o elizabeth_n 1_o subsect_v vii_o prelatic_a falsification_n to_o prove_v that_o pope_n may_v and_o have_v decree_v heresy_n in_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n ●_o cap._n 5._o jewel_n and_o the_o english_a clergy_n affirm_v that_o pope_n john_n 22._o hold_v a_o wicked_a and_o detestable_a opinion_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o jmmortality_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o accusation_n they_o have_v out_o of_o calvin_n who_o word_n be_v that_o pope_n john_n affirm_v man_n soul_n to_o be_v mortal_a this_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o lie_n by_o doctor_n harding_n jewel_n and_o his_o clergy_n reply_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n thus_o gerson_n write_v in_o sermon_n paschali_fw-la pope_n john_n 2d_o to_o have_v decree_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o be_v punish_v before_o the_o day_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n by_o which_o word_n 6●7_n as_o you_o shall_v see_v instead_o of_o clear_n one_o fall_v accusation_n against_o john_n 22_o they_o bring_v in_o another_o for_o gerson_n have_v no_o such_o word_n but_o the_o true_a controversy_n be_v indeed_o whether_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a not_o of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n or_o not_o wherein_o pope_n john_n be_v reader_n of_o divinity_n in_o france_n before_o he_o be_v pope_n incline_v to_o the_o negative_a part_n the_o controversy_n be_v decide_v after_o pope_n john_n death_n i●_n the_o extravagant_a of_o pope_n benedictus_n not_o content_a with_o this_o jmposture_n they_o add_v a_o other_o great_a in_o confirmation_n of_o their_o former_a charge_n father_v in_o the_o same_o and_o these_o ensue_a word_n upon_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n quinimo_fw-la joannes_n papa_n 22._o yea_o pope_n john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o 29.2_o hold_v and_o believe_v obstinate_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n do_v die_v with_o the_o body_n and_o be_v extinguish_v as_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bruit_n beast_n and_o more_o over_o he_o say_v that_o a_o man_n once_o dead_a be_v not_o to_o rise_v again_o no_o not_o at_o the_o last_o day_n first_o this_o testimony_n do_v not_o touch_v pope_n john_n 22._o at_o all_o but_o a_o antipope_n john_n usurp_v the_o popedom_n and_o call_v him-self_n john_n 23._o and_o this_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o pope_n john_n 22._o 2._o these_o word_n be_v not_o word_n of_o the_o council_n but_o word_n of_o a_o accusation_n use_v by_o a_o certain_a man_n that_o do_v accuse_v he_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n under_o the_o name_n baltazar_n de_fw-fr cossa_n call_v him-self_n john_n 23._o where_n lay_v against_o he_o 35._o article_n concern_v his_o wicked_a life_n before_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o say_a name_n of_o pope_n which_o article_n be_v prove_v but_o not_o this_o point_n of_o heresy_n subsect_v viii_o prelatic_a falsification_n to_o prove_v that_o pope_n have_v insult_v over_o king_n the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v set_v forth_o how_o a_o pope_n command_v the_o emperor_n to_o go_v by_o he_o at_o his_o horse_n bridle_n and_o the_o french_a king_n to_o hold_v his_o stirrup_n and_o the_o like_a which_o mr._n harding_n prove_v to_o be_v lie_n than_o it_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n hurl_v under_o his_o table_n francis_n dandalus_n the_o duke_n of_o venise_n king_n of_o creta_n and_o cyprus_n fast-bound_a with_o chain_n to_o feed_v of_o bone_n among_o his_o dog_n but_o neither_o francis_n dandalus_n be_v duke_n of_o venice_n when_o he_o be_v send_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o this_o embassage_n neither_o be_v he_o king_n of_o creta_n nor_o cyprus_n that_o name_n of_o king_n not_o be_v tolerable_a in_o the_o free_a state_n of_o venice_n and_o as_o for_o the_o duke_n at_o that_o time_n his_o name_n be_v johannes_n superantius_n and_o dandalus_n be_v but_o a_o private_a man_n send_v ambassador_n to_o clement_n 5._o then_o pope_n to_o obtain_v the_o revocation_n of_o a_o jnterdict_v which_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o say_a city_n and_o find_v the_o pope_n some_o what_o hard_o to_o yield_v to_o his_o supplication_n he_o devise_v of_o him-self_n this_o stratagem_n to_o cause_v a_o iron_n chain_n to_o be_v put_v about_o his_o own_o neck_n and_o to_o creep_v in_o upon_o his_o hand_n and_o knee_n while_o the_o pope_n be_v at_o dinner_n and_o there_o lie_v down_o under_o the_o table_n 8.260_o and_o will_v not_o rise_v until_o he_o have_v obtain_v pardon_n and_o remission_n for_o his_o country_n and_o this_o doctor_n harding_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o principal_a author_n and_o writer_n of_o the_o venetian_a commonwealth_n subsect_v ix_o prelatic_a falsification_n to_o prove_v that_o s._n austin_n the_o apostle_n of_o our_o english_a saxon_n be_v a_o hypocrite_n and_o no_o saint_n as_o also_o to_o discredit_v catholic_n writer_n bishop_n jewel_n and_o his_o prelatic_a clergy_n in_o their_o reply_n to_o the_o objection_n against_o their_o apology_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pag._n 185._o speak_v thus_o of_o st._n austin_n the_o monk_n and_o apostle_n of_o england_n he_o be_v a_o man_n as_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o that_o 〈◊〉_d and_o know_v he_o neither_o of_o a_o apostolical_a spirit_n nor_o any_o way_n 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v call_v a_o saint_n but_o a_o hypocrite_n and_o a_o supperstitious_a 〈◊〉_d cruel_a bloody_a and_o proud_a out_o of_o measure_n there_o be_v no_o write_v extant_a of_o any_o man_n that_o see_v he_o and_o know_v he_o alive_a but_o only_o of_o st._n gregory_n the_o great_a hist._n who_o commend_v he_o exceed_o and_o of_o st._n bede_n that_o live_v not_o very_o long_o after_o he_o who_o write_v also_o much_o of_o his_o sanctity_n and_o miracle_n who_o then_o 〈◊〉_d those_o who_o live_v with_o he_o and_o know_v he_o do_v judge_v he_o to_o be_v so_o bad_a a_o man_n jewel_n cit_v only_o in_o the_o margin_n greffey_n of_o monmouth_n who_o live_v near_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o st._n augustine_n day_n bishop_n jewel_n and_o his_o comrade_n say_v also_o that_o joannes_n de_fw-fr magistris_fw-la he_o will_v have_v say_v martinus_n write_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr temperantia_fw-la that_o fornication_n be_v no_o sin_n but_o this_o author_n hold_v the_o quite_o contrary_a and_o prove_v it_o by_o six_o several_a conclusion_n 16._o and_o by_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o it_o exclude_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o yet_o for_o that_o he_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n 4._o arguitur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la it_o may_v be_v object_v to_o the_o contrary_a the_o apologist_n foolish_o and_o fraudulent_o accuse_v in_o this_o author_n roman_n catholic_n with_o damnable_a doctrine_n much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v of_o their_o false_a deal_n in_o this_o apology_n defence_n and_o reply_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o we_o remit_v the_o curious_a to_o doctor_n harding_n stapleton_n etc._n etc._n subsect_v x._o of_o the_o protestant_n prelatic_a clergy_n fraud_n and_o falsification_n of_o scripture_n and_o alteration_n of_o their_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n to_o make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o they_o have_v true_a priest_n and_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o point_n most_o insist_v upon_o by_o dr._n h●rding_v stap●●t●n_o &c_n &c_n and_o all_o 〈◊〉_d catholic_n 〈◊〉_d their_o boo●●_n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈…〉_z and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v that_o it_o can_v not_o 〈◊〉_d church_n because_o it_o have_v not_o any_o one_o true_a bishop_n and_o according_a to_o st._n hierom_n say_v harding_n 〈◊〉_d non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n 〈◊〉_d signify_v bishop_n as_o well_o as_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n eliza●●●●_n reign_n who_o harding_n and_o stapleton_n write_v against_o it_o as_o much_o as_o one_o bishop_n valid_o consecrate_v they_o prove_v because_o not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v consecrate_v by_o a_o true_a bishop_n or_o by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n and_o if_o they_o dare_v say_v they_o be_v harding_n and_o stapleton_n
the_o king_n as_o chief_a head_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n who_o affect_v not_o the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o have_v preeminent_a because_o king_n james_n insist_v much_o upon_o a_o spiritual_a supremacy_n they_o translate_v to_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a to_o maintain_v this_o error_n that_o priest_n may_v have_v wife_n they_o translate_v 1._o cor._n 9_o v._n 5._o for_o woman_n wife_n as_o if_o st._n paul_n have_v be_v marry_v whereas_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o this_o same_o epistle_n v._n 8._o that_o he_o be_v not_o marry_v i_o say_v therefore_o to_o the_o unmarried_a and_o widow_n it_o be_v good_a for_o they_o if_o they_o abide_v even_o as_o i._o and_o the_o same_o word_n which_o here_o they_o translate_v wife_n in_o cap._n 7._o v._n 1._o they_o translate_v woman_n because_o st._n paul_n say_v there_o it_o be_v good_a for_o a_o man_n not_o to_o touch_v a_o woman_n but_o here_o to_o translate_v wife_n be_v not_o for_o their_o purpose_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n cap._n 11._o v._n 2._o contrary_a to_o both_o greek_a and_o latin_a they_o translate_v for_o keep_v the_o tradition_n as_o i_o have_v deliver_v they_o to_o you_o keep_v ordinance_n etc._n etc._n 1._o cor._n 15._o v._n 10._o they_o add_v to_o this_o text_n i_o have_v labour_v more_o abundant_o than_o all_o they_o yet_o not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n with_o i_o they_o add_v i_o say_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v with_o i_o 〈◊〉_d that_o where_o the_o apostle_n rather_o say_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n labor_v whi●h_v he_o and_o consequent_o he_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o prove_v 〈…〉_z they_o by_o add_v which_o be_v to_o the_o text_n 〈◊〉_d have_v it_o seem_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v nothing_o at_o all_o but_o be_v move_v like_o a_o thing_n without_o li●e_z or_o will_v and_o thus_o they_o prove_v by_o scripture_n the_o protestant_a error_n ephesian_n 1._o v_o 6._o for_o he_o have_v gratify_v we_o 〈◊〉_d ●●lde_v we_o gracious_a or_o conduct_v we_o with_o gra●e_n they_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d have_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o belove_a against_o inherent_a grace_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o protestant_a error_n of_o imputative_a justice_n epist._n philip._n cap._n 4._o v._n 3._o for_o sincere_a companion_n help_v those_o woman_n etc._n etc._n they_o translate_v true_a yoke-fellow_n help_v those_o woman_n t●_n make_v man_n believe_v that_o st._n paul_n have_v recommend_v those_o person_n to_o his_o wife_n who_o indeed_o have_v none_o 1_o cor._n 7._o v._n 8._o notwithstanding_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o calvinist_n because_o reason_n o●_n state_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o parliament_n require_v bishop_n yet_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v zuinglian_n and_o calvinian_a in_o most_o point_n and_o doctor_z abbot_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o have_v the_o great_a hand_n in_o correct_v the_o bible_n by_o king_n james_n his_o order_n be_v calvin_n great_a admirer_n 10._o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o book_n one_o of_o calvin_n blasphemy_n against_o christ_n be_v that_o he_o fear_v and_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n nay_o and_o despair_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n do_v explain_v his_o descent_n into_o hell_n admit_v of_o no_o other_o that_o this_o blasphemy_n may_v be_v authorise_v by_o scripture_n cranmer_n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n and_o church_n of_o england_n after_o he_o in_o their_o edition_n of_o tyndal_n and_o coverdales_n bible_n a_o 1562._o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n chap._n 5._o vers_fw-la 7._o corrupt_v st._n paul_n word_n speak_v of_o christ_n pray_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v hear_v for_o his_o reverence_n thus_o he_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o he_o fear_v to_o maintain_v their_o blasphemous_a paradox_n that_o our_o saviour_n shall_v have_v fear_v and_o feel_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n upon_o the_o cross._n to_o confirm_v also_o this_o wicked_a doctrine_n and_o confute_v lyn●●_n 〈◊〉_d j●●trum_n and_o purgatory_n dr._n abbot_n archbishop_n of_o cant._n and_o the_o other_o translator_n of_o the_o bible_n corrupt_v 1._o pet._n 3._o v_o 〈…〉_z for_o whereas_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v quicken_v or_o alive_a 〈…〉_z or_o soul_n in_o the_o which_o spirit_n come_v he_o preach_v 〈…〉_z also_o that_o be_v in_o prison_n they_o translate_v quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o also_o he_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n 〈…〉_z this_o translation_n be_v so_o gross_a that_o doctor_n montagu●_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n and_o no●wich_n reprehend_v for_o it_o sir_n hen●●_n will_v to_o who_o care_n the_o translate_n of_o st._n peter_n epistle_n commit_v but_o sir_n henry_n savill_n tell_v he_o plain_o that_o doctor_n abbot_n and_o dr._n smith_n bishop_n of_o gloucester_n corrupt_v and_o alter_v the_o translation_n of_o this_o place_n which_o himself_o have_v sincere_o perform_v in_o pursuance_n of_o this_o their_o calvinian_a he●●sy_n and_o corruption_n they_o pervert_v the_o text_n of_o gen._n 37._o v._n 35._o translate_n grave_n for_o hell_n protestant_n deny_v more_o place_n for_o soul_n after_o this_o life_n then_o heaven_n for_o the_o just_a and_o hell_n for_o the_o wicked_a and_o be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n 〈◊〉_d be_v damn_v or_o that_o he_o despared_a of_o his_o salvation_n when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v go_v down_o to_o my_o son_n into_o hell_n mourn_a gen._n 37._o 〈◊〉_d 35._o they_o translate_v i_o will_v go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n unto_o my_o 〈◊〉_d mourn_v and_o rather_o than_o confess_v a_o three_o place_n and_o by_o consequence_n purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n they_o father_n nonsense_n upon_o jacob_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o though_o jacob_n think_v that_o his_o son_n jos●ph_n have_v be_v bury_v in_o a_o grave_n whereas_o jacob_n th●ught_v and_o say_v immediate_o before_o vers_n 33._o a_o evil_a beast_n have_v devour_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v necessary_o have_v me●●●_n that_o he_o will_v die_v and_o go_v where_o he_o think_v the_o soul_n of_o his_o son_n joseph_n to_o be_v which_o be_v neither_o in_o heaven_n for_o then_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v ascend_v thither_o joyful_a then_o descend_v to_o any_o place_n mourn_v neither_o do_v he_o mean_v the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a for_o that_o have_v be_v desperation_n but_o to_o a_o low_a place_n where_o the_o lust_n soul_n then_o remain_v which_o be_v call_v lying_o patrum_fw-la or_o abraham_n bosom_n the_o way_n of_o the_o holies_n as_o saint_n paul_n speak_v be_v not_o yet_o make_v open_a because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o dedicat_fw-la and_o begin_v the_o entrance_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o by_o his_o passion_n to_o open_a heaven_n tertullian_n lib._n ●●_o advers._fw-la marc●●●_n say_v i_o know_v the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n be_v 〈◊〉_d heavenly_a place_n but_o only_o the_o high_a hell_n or_o the_o high_a part_n of_o hell_n from_o which_o speech_n of_o the_o father_n 〈…〉_z afterward_o that_o other_o ●ame_n lymbas_n patr●●●_n that_o be_v the_o very_a 〈◊〉_d or_o uppermost_a and_o outmost_a part_n of_o hell_n where_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n rest_v the_o word_n of_o st._n peter_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o v._n ●5_n and_o i_o will_v do_v my_o diligent_o to_o have_v you_o often_o after_o my_o decease_n also_o that_o you_o may_v keep_v a_o memory_n of_o these_o thing_n seem_v to_o protestant_n so_o plain_a in_o favour_n of_o his_o pray_v for_o the_o christian_n after_o his_o decease_n that_o king_n james_n his_o translator_n change_v they_o into_o these_o moreover_o i_o will_v endeavour_v that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a after_o my_o decease_n to_o have_v these_o thing_n always_o to_o remembrance_n we_o ask_v protestant_n why_o do_v they_o wrest_v this_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n and_o corrupt_a scripture_n against_o the_o honour_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v to_o saint_n psalm_n 138._o thy_o friend_n o_o god_n be_v b●●ome_v exceed_o honourable_a their_o princedom_n be_v exceed_o strengthen_v which_o be_v saint_n hierom_n translation_n from_o the_o hebrew_n confirm_v by_o the_o great_a rabbin_z r._n solomon_n and_o the_o greek_a text_n and_o never_o except_v against_o by_o any_o learned_a father_n of_o the_o church_n until_o the_o protestant_a translator_n be_v please_v to_o alter_v it_o thus_o how_o precious_a be_v thy_o thought_n 〈◊〉_d o_o god_n how_o great_a be_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o as_o if_o multiplicity_n of_o thought_n be_v a_o admirable_a excellency_n in_o god_n whereas_o his_o 〈◊〉_d admit_v not_o many_o but_o rather_o one_o comprehensive_a knowledge_n without_o composition_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o have_v say_v of_o they_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n that_o they_o be_v more_o in_o number_n then_o the_o sand_n which_o expression_n may_v
〈…〉_z who_o run_v their_o 〈◊〉_d way_n etc._n etc._n but_o true_o i_o 〈◊〉_d no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v jud●●_n so_o rash_o of_o roman_a catholic_n 〈…〉_z to_o persuade_v the_o king_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o we_o be_v so_o impious_a and_o envious_a as_o to_o conceal_v from_o the_o people_n the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n see_v we_o stick_v to_o the_o old_a letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n without_o alter_v the_o text_n or_o reject_v any_o part_n thereof_o or_o devise_v new_a interpretation_n and_o we_o be_v daily_o employ_v not_o only_o in_o preach_v and_o explain_v god_n word_n in_o europe_n but_o forsake_v our_o own_o country_n and_o convenience_n and_o travel_v with_o great_a difficulty_n and_o danger_n both_o by_o sea_n and_o land_n to_o asia_n africa_n america_n and_o the_o antipode_n with_o no_o other_o possible_a design_n but_o to_o publish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o enlighten_v the_o nation_n of_o gentill●_n who_o be_v in_o 〈…〉_z ignorance_n and_o as_o for_o their_o self-conceited_a presbit●●ian_n 〈…〉_z brethren_n who_o run_n their_o own_a way_n in_o translate_n and_o interpret_n scripture_n we_o do_v not_o excuse_v they_o but_o only_o say_v that_o we_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o prelaticks_n shall_v 〈…〉_z for_o a_o fault_n whereof_o themselves_o be_v no_o less_o guilty_a do_v not_o prelaticks_n run_v their_o own_o way_n as_o well_o as_o those_o other_o sectary_n in_o translate_n the_o bible_n do_v they_o stick_v to_o either_o the_o greek_a latin_a or_o hebrew_n text_n do_v they_o not_o leap_v from_o one_o language_n and_o copy_n to_o a_o other_o accept_v and_o reject_v what_o they_o please_v do_v they_o not_o fancy_v a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o every_o jot_n as_o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n and_o ancient_a church_n as_o that_o of_o their_o brethren_n the_o presbiterian_o and_o other_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v and_o yet_o they_o be_v neither_o more_o learned_a nor_o more_o skilful_a in_o tongue_n nor_o more_o godly_a than_o those_o they_o so_o much_o contemn_v and_o blame_v but_o to_o the_o end_n every_o christian_a may_n more_o clear_o discern_v 〈◊〉_d cheat_n and_o divert_v himself_o with_o some_o variety_n in_o the_o method_n of_o this_o tedious_a but_o convince_a argument_n i_o will_v give_v 〈◊〉_d a_o brief_a relation_n of_o a_o remarkable_a passage_n much_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d purpose_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n james_n 〈◊〉_d reign_n by_o which_o he_o may_v in_o one_o man_n case_n see_v the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o sincerity_n of_o all_o the_o protestant_n prelatic_a church_n and_o 〈◊〉_d in_o king_n james_n his_o time_n and_o judge_n what_o satisfaction_n 〈◊〉_d may_v have_v in_o this_o world_n or_o whether_o they_o may_v expect_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o next_o by_o rely_v upon_o the_o authority_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o prelatic_a protestant_a church_n of_o england_n subsect_v ii_o of_o deane_n vvalsingham_n search_n into_o matter_n of_o religion_n before_o his_o change_n to_o the_o catholic_n how_o he_o repair_v for_o a_o resolution_n of_o his_o doube_n to_o king_n james_n as_o to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o remit_v he_o to_o the_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n and_o he_o to_o other_o man_n and_o how_o after_o find_v no_o satisfaction_n he_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o read_n of_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n author_n for_o discern_v on_o what_o side_n be_v the_o true_a or_o false_a deal_v i_o will_v reduce_v into_o as_o narrow_a a_o compass_n as_o i_o can_v deane_n walsingham_n relation_n which_o he_o dedicate_v to_o k._n james_n conclude_v his_o epistle_n with_o these_o word_n most_o humble_o on_o my_o knee_n i_o beseech_v your_o royal_a majesty_n to_o pardon_v i_o this_o 〈◊〉_d resolution_n whereunto_o i_o protest_v upon_o my_o soul_n and_o conscience_n that_o no_o earthly_a motive_n draw_v i_o but_o only_o my_o love_n and_o obedience_n 〈◊〉_d to_o he_o that_o be_v king_n of_o all_o king_n etc._n etc._n that_o 〈…〉_z pag._n 〈…〉_z as_o you_o have_v see_v to_o change_v my_o judgement_n and_o yield_v to_o the_o manifest_a evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v on_o the_o catholic_n side_n and_o nothing_o 〈…〉_z shift●_n and_o deceit_n on_o the_o contrary_n this_o 〈◊〉_d speak_v here_o good_a 〈◊〉_d as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o as_o in_o truth_n of_o conscience_n i_o have_v find_v and_o no_o way_n out_o of_o passion_n or_o evil_a affection_n or_o worldly_a respect_n in_o which_o every_o man_n will_v easy_o see_v how_o much_o i_o prejudice_v myself_o by_o this_o new_a course_n take_v but_o that_o both_o reason_n and_o religion_n prudence_n and_o all_o true_a piety_n do_v ●●●quire_v that_o the_o everlasting_a salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o human_a respect_n whatsoever_o which_o be_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a cause_n of_o this_o my_o resolution_n and_o this_o i_o desire_v thou_o good_a christian_a reader_n to_o believe_v and_o assure_v thyself_o to_o be_v most_o true_a as_o a●_n the_o last_o day_n when_o we_o shall_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o 〈◊〉_d saviour_n and_o all_o heart_n be_v make_v know_v will_v evident_o appear_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n he_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o protestant_a education_n and_o religion_n wherein_o 〈◊〉_d be_v so_o zealous_a that_o he_o take_v all_o occasion_n to_o deal_v with_o other_o either_o for_o their_o confirmation_n or_o gain_v to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o this_o effect_n be_v wont_a to_o send_v book_n of_o that_o profession_n to_o any_o that_o will_v read_v they_o by_o which_o occasion_n it_o fall_v out_o that_o one_o of_o his_o ac●quaintance_n that_o seem_v backward_o in_o the_o acceptance_n of_o a_o book_n be_v content_a to_o receive_v it_o from_o he_o upon_o condition_n say_v he_o that_o i_o shall_v promise_v he_o to_o read_v a_o other_o book_n he_o will_v lend_v i_o whereof_o i_o accept_v this_o book_n be_v inittule_v a_o defence_n of_o the_o censure_n give_v upon_o two_o book_n of_o william_n chark_n and_o meredith_n hanmer_n minister_n which_o book_n i_o little_o esteem_v at_o that_o time_n think_v it_o shall_v serve_v i_o for_o some_o disport_n especial_o for_o gather_v out_o some_o absurdity_n against_o papist_n wherewith_o i_o do_v imagine_v all_o their_o book_n to_o be_v abundant_o stuff_v but_o find_v whersoever_o i_o light_v certain_a passage_n which_o i_o can_v 〈◊〉_d well_o digest_v and_o many_o proof_n allege_v whereunto_o i_o can_v 〈◊〉_d answer_n i_o cast_v ●t_a of●en_o aside_o and_o then_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n again_o 〈◊〉_d ●oon_o after_o i_o feel_v myself_o so_o strange_o trouble_v and_o turmoil_v in_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n upon_o the_o read_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d my_o soul_n have_v take_v pill_n indeed_o and_o can_v not_o bear_v 〈…〉_z i_o confer_v divers_a of_o my_o difficulty_n with_o 〈◊〉_d ●●nisters_n without_o specify_v that_o i_o have_v they_o out_o of_o such_o 〈◊〉_d but_o they_o can_v give_v i_o very_o little_a satisfaction_n or_o 〈◊〉_d at_o all_o whereupon_o i_o make_v divers_a journey_n to_o london_n 〈…〉_z to_o see_v book_n of_o sundry_a sort_n as_o also_o to_o confer_v with_o 〈◊〉_d of_o my_o friend_n and_o have_v weary_v myself_o in_o this_o sort_n 〈◊〉_d the_o space_n of_o divers_a mo●thes_n at_o last_o i_o betake_v myself_o to_o a_o ●ore_o strange_a resolution_n but_o yet_o such_o as_o then_o seem_v to_o 〈◊〉_d most_o necessary_a for_o appease_v of_o my_o mind_n and_o this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d so_o much_o as_o i_o have_v take_v two_o or_o three_o several_a time_n the_o oath_n 〈◊〉_d supremacy_n first_o to_o the_o queen_n and_o afterward_o to_o his_o majesty_n that_o now_o reign_v i_o 〈◊〉_d persuade_v myself_o that_o my_o best_a comfort_n of_o conscience_n will_v come_v from_o the_o superior_a power_n but_o especial_o from_o his_o learned_a majesty_n who_o govern_v the_o crown_n as_o from_o god_n lieutenant_n and_o substitute_n in_o all_o cause_n and_o affair_n whatsoever_o wherefore_o after_o much_o deliberation_n not_o dare_v to_o confer_v ●ith_o any_o papist_n or_o almost_o to_o entertain_v any_o good_a thought_n 〈◊〉_d they_o or_o of_o their_o religion_n i_o determine_v with_o myself_o to_o ●ake_v a_o short_a memorial_n unto_o his_o say_a majesty_n and_o to_o deliver_v he_o the_o sum_n of_o my_o affliction_n and_o doubt_n together_o with_o the_o ●●ok_n itself_o which_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o and_o to_o entreat_v he_o by_o his_o supreme_a authority_n to_o give_v order_n for_o my_o sound_a satisfaction_n therein_o and_o so_o bind_v up_o the_o old_a book_n in_o the_o comely_a manner_n i_o can_v i_o get_v i_o to_o london_n and_o thence_o to_o greenwich_n and_o there_o after_o many_o difficulty_n of_o audience_n i_o exhibit_v the_o same_o together_o with_o my_o memorial_n both_o tie_v and_o conjoin_v in_o one_o
the_o citation_n which_o we_o do_v accuse_v of_o falsehood_n be_v so_o indeed_o in_o the_o author_n as_o plessis_n have_v allege_v in_o his_o book_n and_o yet_o of_o the_o overthrow_n of_o these_o so_o many_o falsification_n gather_v together_o ensue_v the_o overthrow_n and_o dishonour_n of_o the_o cause_n which_o be_v defend_v by_o such_o weapon_n and_o consequent_o we_o be_v much_o bind_v to_o the_o holy_a providence_n of_o of_o almighty_a god_n piece_n that_o he_o have_v permit_v in_o this_o last_o assault_n of_o heretic_n the_o minister_n of_o france_n to_o have_v lay_v all_o the_o head_n of_o their_o false_a imposture_n and_o deceitful_a deal_n upon_o one_o body_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v all_o cut_v off_o at_o one_o blow_n and_o that_o the_o simple_a people_n by_o they_o abuse_v see_v discover_v the_o false_a and_o unfaithful_a deal_n of_o those_o upon_o who_o fidelity_n they_o ground_v their_o faith_n may_v forsake_v they_o hereafter_o and_o return_v to_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o sure_a ground_n of_o all_o truth_n this_o be_v a_o excellent_a method_n and_o peron_n word_n may_v be_v very_o well_o apply_v to_o b._n tailor_n be_v dissuasive_a from_o popery_n but_o to_o our_o relation_n the_o judge_n of_o the_o conference_n be_v beside_o the_o chancellor_n of_o france_n who_o be_v moderator_n the_o precedent_n de_fw-fr thou_fw-mi a_o near_a kinsman_n to_o plessis_n mounseur_fw-fr pitheu_fw-la his_o great_a friend_n and_o mounseur_fw-fr le_fw-fr feure_n master_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o conde_n all_o catholic_n on_o the_o other_o side_n for_o the_o protestant_n be_v name_v the_o precedent_n calignon_fw-fr chancellor_n of_o navarre_n and_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr fresne_n conaye_v precedent_n and_o mounseur_fw-fr causabon_n reader_n to_o his_o majesty_n in_o paris_n all_o earnest_n and_o learned_a protestant_n the_o day_n before_o the_o trial_n peron_n to_o deal_v more_o plain_o and_o like_o a_o friend_n send_v unto_o plessis_n 60._o place_n take_v out_o of_o his_o book_n upon_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o press_v he_o and_o as_o his_o word_n be_v to_o begin_v the_o play_n of_o which_o 60._o plessis_n choose_v out_o 19_o that_o seem_v to_o he_o most_o defensible_a but_o the_o next_o day_n the_o trial_n be_v begin_v after_o peron_n have_v declare_v there_o be_v four_o thousand_o place_n falsify_v in_o plessis_n his_o book_n only_o 9_o of_o the_o 19_o can_v be_v examine_v though_o they_o sit_v 6._o hour_n and_o all_o judge_v against_o plessis_n by_o common_a consent_n whereupon_o plessis_n fall_v sick_a that_o night_n vomit_v blood_n etc._n etc._n and_o can_v be_v never_o get_v to_o proceed_v in_o the_o trial_n and_o go_v from_o paris_n to_o samur_n without_o take_v leave_n of_o the_o king_n or_o see_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n this_o proof_n of_o wilful_a falsification_n whereby_o alone_o it_o seem_v protestancy_n can_v be_v maintain_v every_o where_o else_o as_o well_o as_o in_o england_n occasion_v the_o conversion_n of_o very_a many_o in_o france_n as_o the_o king_n lieutenant_n in_o limoge_n and_o his_o wife_n with_o divers_a of_o the_o nobility_n and_o no_o few_o minister_n whereof_o one_o be_v tirius_n a_o scotchman_n master_n of_o a_o college_n in_o nismes_n and_o a_o other_o who_o be_v nephew_n to_o john_n calvin_n the_o copy_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o a_o person_n of_o quality_n about_o this_o conference_n sir_n here_o have_v be_v some_o four_o day_n past_o a_o great_a conference_n at_o fontainbleau_n between_o monsieur_n peron_n bishop_n of_o eureux_fw-fr and_o mounseur_fw-fr plessis_n mornay_n governor_n of_o samur_fw-la the_o king_n with_o many_o prince_n be_v present_a and_o judge_n choose_v and_o appoint_v for_o both_o party_n in_o the_o end_n plessis_n mornay_n be_v utter_o disprove_v and_o confound_v by_o a_o general_a consent_n of_o both_o side_n and_o shame_v in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o king_n rise_v up_o from_o his_o place_n and_o swear_v ventre_fw-fr gry_n he_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v enough_o of_o plessis_n falsity_n and_o that_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n he_o will_v cause_v his_o book_n to_o be_v burn_v say_v that_o himself_o have_v all_o his_o youth_n time_n be_v abuse_v and_o carry_v away_o with_o their_o corruption_n etc._n etc._n the_o hugonot_n be_v strike_v more_o dead_a with_o this_o accident_n then_o if_o they_o have_v lose_v a_o battle_n of_o 40._o thousand_o man_n and_o plessis_n mornay_n himself_o be_v fall_v sick_a upon_o it_o vomit_v blood_n and_o look_n like_o himself_o etc._n etc._n paris_n 10._o may._n 1600._o king_n henry_n 4._o letter_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o espernon_n upon_o the_o same_o subject_n my_o friend_n the_o diocese_n of_o eureux_fw-fr have_v overcome_v samur_fw-la and_o the_o sweet_a manner_n of_o proceed_v that_o have_v be_v use_v have_v take_v away_o all_o occasion_n to_o say_v that_o any_o force_n have_v be_v use_v beside_o the_o only_a force_n of_o truth_n the_o bearer_n hereof_o be_v present_a at_o the_o combat_n who_o will_v inform_v you_o what_o marvel_n i_o have_v do_v therein_o certain_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a blow_n that_o have_v be_v give_v for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n this_o long_a time_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o this_o error_n by_o this_o mean_n we_o shall_v reduce_v more_o in_o one_o year_n of_o they_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n then_o by_o any_o other_o way_n in_o fifty_o year_n there_o be_v a_o large_a discourse_n to_o be_v make_v of_o each_o their_o action_n but_o the_o same_o be_v too_o long_o to_o write_v the_o beare●_n will_v tell_v you_o the_o manner_n which_o i_o will_v have_v all_o my_o servant_n to_o observe_v for_o reap_v fruit_n of_o this_o holy_a work_n good_a night_n my_o friend_n and_o for_o that_o i_o know_v what_o pleasure_n you_o will_v take_v hereof_o you_o be_v the_o only_a man_n to_o who_o i_o have_v write_v it_o this_o ●_o of_o may_n 1600._o henry_n the_o author_n falsify_v and_o the_o sentence_n give_v against_o plessis_n the_o 〈◊〉_d place_n or_o author_n corrupt_v by_o plessis_n and_o his_o minist●●●_n go_v 〈◊〉_d about_o the_o real_a presence_n durandus_fw-la against_o transubstantiation_n st._n chrysostom_n against_o prayer_n to_o 〈◊〉_d twice_o 〈…〉_z against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n st._n cyril_n against_o worship_v the_o holy_a cross._n the_o code_n or_o imperial_a 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o same_o 〈…〉_z against_o honour_v our_o b._n lady_n 〈◊〉_d against_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o particular_n whereof_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o print_a act_n of_o this_o conference_n and_o in_o the_o three_o conversion_n part_v 3._o translate_v into_o english_a but_o to_o satisfy_v the_o curiosity_n of_o many_o i_o will_v copy_v the_o abridgement_n of_o the_o judge_n sentence_n which_o be_v deliver_v immediate_o after_o conference_n by_o the_o secretary_n to_o divers_a person_n of_o quality_n upon_o the_o first_o two_o place_n of_o scotus_n and_o durandu●_n the_o sentence_n be_v that_o monsieur_n plessis_n have_v take_v the_o objection_n for_o the_o resolution_n upon_o the_o place_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n that_o he_o have_v leave_v out_o that_o which_o he_o shall_v have_v put_v in_o upon_o the_o five_o place_n of_o st._n hierom_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v allege_v the_o passage_n entire_a 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v in_o the_o author_n upon_o the_o six_o place_n of_o st._n cyril_n that_o 〈◊〉_d passage_n allege_v out_o of_o st._n cyril_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o he_o the_o seven_o place_n out_o of_o the_o emperor_n theodorus_n and_o valens_n 〈◊〉_d plessi●_n have_v allege_v true_o crinitus_n but_o that_o crinitus_n be_v abu●●●_n upon_o the_o eight_o place_n out_o of_o st._n bernard_n that_o it_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d plessis_n have_v cite_v the_o place_n distinct_o as_o it_o lay_v in_o the_o author_n with_o 〈…〉_z of_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o midst_n and_o finaly_a upon_o the_o nine_o 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o theodoret_n against_o image_n that_o the_o passage_n allege_v 〈◊〉_d not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o image_n but_o of_o idol_n and_o that_o this_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o word_n which_o plessis_n have_v omit_v in_o his_o allegation_n 〈◊〉_d this_o suffice_v for_o french_a falsification_n let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o english_a whereof_o there_o be_v such_o abundance_n and_o so_o great_a variety_n ●hat_n i_o can_v hardly_o resolve_v which_o to_o 〈◊〉_d upon_o sect_n viii_o protestant_n falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o safety_n of_o king_n and_o with_o civil_a society_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n the_o protestant_a clergy_n see_v their_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n of_o scripture_n father_n and_o counsel_n clear_o discover_v and_o that_o after_o queen_n elizabeth_n death_n they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o make_v catholic_a religion_n odious_a to_o the_o line_n of_o the_o steward_n our_o tenet_n favour_v their_o
to_o consecrat_v and_o make_v any_o man_n 〈…〉_z arch-bishop_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o 〈…〉_z and_o hereupon_o all_o ambiguity_n of_o archbishop_n parker_n 〈◊〉_d cammerade_n consecration_n be_v answer_v and_o they_o 〈◊〉_d declare_v to_o be_v bishop_n because_o the_o queen_n have_v in_o her_o let●●●●_n patent_n dispense_v with_o all_o cause_n of_o doubt_n imperfection_n 〈◊〉_d disability_n that_o may_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v object_v against_o the_o same_o and_o with_o the_o very_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o consecratory_n who_o indeed_o be_v no_o bishop_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v heretofore_o it_o be_v then_o manifest_a that_o none_o can_v give_v what_o himself_o have_v not_o if_o the_o king_n of_o england_n can_v give_v to_o a_o lay_v man_n or_o to_o 〈◊〉_d falsification_n set_v down_o together_o by_o bp._n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v pope_n can_v not_o be_v depose_v nor_o be_v heretic_n the_o author_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o depose_v king_n in_o case_n of_o heresy_n say_v morton_n do_v profess_v concern_v pope_n 38._o 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o can_v possible_o be_v heretic_n as_o pope_n and_o consequent_o can_v not_o be_v depose_v 40._o not_o say_v bellarmin_n by_o any_o 〈◊〉_d ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a no_o not_o by_o all_o bishop_n assem●●●●_n in_o a_o council_n not_o say_v carerius_fw-la though_o he_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d any_o thing_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o universal_a state_n of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d say_v azorius_fw-la though_o he_o shall_v neglect_v the_o canon_n ecclesiastical_a or_o pervert_v the_o law_n of_o king_n not_o sai_z 〈…〉_z though_o he_o shall_v carry_v infinite_a multitude_n of_o 〈◊〉_d with_o he_o to_o hell_n and_o these_o forename_a author_n do_v 〈…〉_z for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o doctrine_n the_o universal_a 〈◊〉_d romish_a ●●●ines_n and_o canonist_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 〈…〉_z year_n 〈◊〉_d these_o 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o many_o notorious_a and_o shamless_a lie_n 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o author_n name_v by_o morton_n for_o first_o 〈…〉_z which_o he_o mention_v there_o in_o the_o text_n to_o 〈◊〉_d bellarmi●●_n 〈◊〉_d azor_n and_o gratian_n 30._o do_v express_o 〈…〉_z hold_v the_o contrary_a to_o that_o he_o affirm_v out_o 〈…〉_z that_o they_o teach_v and_o prove_v by_o many_o argument_n 〈…〉_z may_v fall_v into_o heresy_n and_o for_o the_o same_o be_v 〈…〉_z the_o church_n or_o rather_o be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la depose_v and_o 〈…〉_z to_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n but_o yet_o not_o content_a with_o 〈◊〉_d morton_n cit_v other_o four_o or_o five_o author_n in_o the_o margin_n 〈◊〉_d valentia_n salmeron_n canus_n stapleton_n and_o costerius_fw-la all_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o very_a place_n by_o he_o cite_v be_v express_o against_o 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v not_o this_o strange_a deal_n be_v it_o not_o a_o strange_a religion_n that_o must_v be_v support_v by_o falsehood_n be_v not_o they_o strange_a man_n that_o give_v a_o million_o sterl_n per_fw-la a_o to_o a_o clergy_n for_o thus_o deceive_v and_o delude_v their_o flock_n and_o damn_v their_o soul_n 〈◊〉_d opinion_n or_o against_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n even_o 〈◊〉_d general_a counsel_n accept_v and_o connive_v at_o by_o the_o tempo●●●_n sovereign_n themselves_o the_o effect_n of_o such_o opinion_n may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d secure_o suppress_v by_o silence_v the_o doctor_n then_o by_o 〈◊〉_d the_o doctrine_n 〈◊〉_d popular_a and_o plausible_a ●n_n opinion_n it_o be_v that_o god_n 〈…〉_z his_o church_n and_o people_n to_o defend_v themselves_o 〈…〉_z their_o little_a child_n from_o be_v erroneous_o 〈…〉_z the_o force_n and_o violence_n of_o a_o heathen_a or_o heretical_a 〈…〉_z may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o author_n that_o treat_v of_o this_o 〈…〉_z that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o oppose_v the_o change_n 〈…〉_z without_o 〈◊〉_d the_o sin_n and_o scandal_n of_o 〈…〉_z will_v have_v 〈…〉_z great_a regard_n to_o the_o 〈…〉_z one_o or_o few_o prince_n then_o to_o the_o eternal_a salva●●●●_n 〈…〉_z soul_n and_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v 〈…〉_z be_v come_v 〈◊〉_d of_o discretion_n do_v run_v 〈…〉_z the_o rigour_n of_o persecution_n 〈…〉_z any_o other_o religion_n 〈…〉_z heresy_n 〈◊〉_d the_o prince_n do_v introduce_v 〈…〉_z their_o succee_a posterity_n must_v perish_v 〈…〉_z not_o appear_v in_o their_o defence_n 〈…〉_z change_v of_o true_a religion_n 〈…〉_z innocent_n posterity_n from_o 〈…〉_z answer_v in_o his_o treatise_n of_o 〈…〉_z under_o colo●●_n of_o religion_n ●dit_n 〈…〉_z nothing_o so_o likly_a to_o entail_v true_a 〈…〉_z posterity_n as_o their_o ancestor_n 〈…〉_z their_o suffering_n wh●●_n they_o shall_v hear_v and_o be_v assure_v 〈◊〉_d testimony_n th●●_n their_o forefather_n thus_o hope_v in_o god_n 〈◊〉_d choose_v to_o die_v or_o suffer_v rather_o than_o to_o rebel_v 〈◊〉_d the_o king_n beside_o say_v 〈◊〉_d the_o grate_a preju●●●●_n which_o that_o posterity_n can_v suffer_v by_o their_o ancestor_n non_fw-la ●●●●●tance_n be_v 〈…〉_z be_v bring_v up_o in_o a_o contrary_a religion_n to_o hear_v that_o 〈…〉_z but_o sure_o not_o to_o have_v their_o ear_n deaf●●_n against_o all_o 〈◊〉_d when_o they_o shall_v be_v represent_v he_o 〈…〉_z they_o who_o predecessor_n be_v most_o zealous_a 〈◊〉_d and_o suffer_v for_o their_o faith_n the_o first_o earl_n of_o south_n 〈◊〉_d suffer_v much_o for_o oppose_a seamor_n when_o he_o and_o 〈◊〉_d plant_v protestancy_n in_o england_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v 〈…〉_z influence_n this_o have_v upon_o his_o posterity_n and_o this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d of_o most_o of_o the_o nobility_n and_o even_o of_o the_o royal_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o doctor_n say_v posterity_n have_v not_o their_o ear_n 〈…〉_z other_o religion_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v represent_v 〈…〉_z and_o england_n they_o have_v it_o be_v treason_n by_o the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d with_o any_o of_o our_o king_n subject_n concern_v the_o truth_n 〈…〉_z roman_a catholik_o religion_n and_o we_o know_v what_o other_o 〈…〉_z take_v not_o only_o to_o deaf_a but_o to_o blind_v they_o from_o 〈…〉_z the_o evidence_n produce_v against_o the_o falsehood_n of_o 〈…〉_z with_o protestant_n may_v consider_v such_o as_o we_o present_a 〈…〉_z book_n doctor_n hammond_n can_v not_o be_v 〈…〉_z much_o himself_o contribute_v to_o make_v his_o country_n 〈…〉_z and_o blind_a in_o religion_n especial_o after_o that_o mr._n 〈…〉_z expose_o his_o mistake_n or_o wilful_a falsification_n to_o the_o 〈…〉_z but_o 〈◊〉_d return_n to_o the_o question_n 〈…〉_z grant_v and_o maintain_v by_o protestant_a author_n 〈…〉_z sovereign_n or_o bloody_a tyrant_n who_o 〈…〉_z and_o practice_n reach_v no_o further_o than_o the_o body_n 〈…〉_z resist_v and_o depose_v they_o will_v find_v 〈…〉_z to_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o soul_n may_v not_o claim_v 〈…〉_z unless_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v 〈…〉_z that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o eternity_n beside_o such_o catholics_n as_o maintain_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o case_n 〈◊〉_d and_o persecution_n may_v depose_v king_n or_o at_o least_o 〈◊〉_d that_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la they_o be_v depose_v by_o god_n who_o give_v 〈◊〉_d their_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n not_o to_o destroy_v but_o to_o edify_v 〈◊〉_d they_o to_o flatter_v the_o pope_n thereby_o for_o that_o they_o make_v 〈…〉_z himself_o more_o subject_a to_o deposition_n than_o king_n because_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v depose_v for_o any_o heretical_a opinion_n he_o 〈◊〉_d king_n say_v they_o can_v not_o unless_o they_o force_v their_o subject_n 〈◊〉_d considerable_a part_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n that_o our_o ●●●●rnment_n and_o people_n seem_v to_o apprehend_v their_o own_o 〈◊〉_d against_o we_o catholik_o do_v make_v we_o the_o object_n of_o a_o 〈…〉_z and_o do_v gain_v for_o themselves_o nothing_o but_o a_o 〈◊〉_d enmity_n of_o such_o powerful_a monarch_n as_o have_v any_o sense_n 〈…〉_z the_o roman_a religion_n ●●condly_o though_o a_o king_n shall_v persecute_v catholik_o and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o sanguinary_a law_n compel_v his_o subject_n to_o profess_v 〈◊〉_d if_o this_o persecution_n be_v please_v to_o the_o generality_n of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n censure_n and_o sentence_n can_v not_o be_v of_o much_o 〈◊〉_d prejudice_n or_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o dominion_n and_o as_o 〈…〉_z apostolik_n temporal_a power_n it_o neither_o be_v so_o 〈…〉_z itself_o nor_o so_o applicable_a to_o these_o our_o remote_a 〈…〉_z to_o deserve_v to_o be_v make_v the_o object_n of_o our_o protestant_n 〈…〉_z or_o fe●rs_n we_o see_v how_o little_a q._n elizabeth_n value_v 〈…〉_z because_o she_o have_v the_o affection_n of_o she_o 〈…〉_z we_o search_v into_o history_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o 〈…〉_z rome_n his_o censure_n never_o prejudice_v any_o sovereign_n 〈…〉_z not_o first_o lose_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o own_o people_n the_o pope_n 〈…〉_z awe_z by_o his_o sentence_n and_o excommunica●●●●_n 〈…〉_z of_o the_o italian_a prince_n and_o commonwealth_n 〈…〉_z have_v demonstrate_v how_o uneffectual_a his_o 〈…〉_z even_o against_o those_o petty_a prince_n and_o 〈…〉_z what_o
need_v therefore_o powerful_a and_o 〈…〉_z prince_n and_o nation_n fear_v a_o jurisdiction_n they_o 〈…〉_z see_v than_o so_o much_o talk_v of_o papal_a 〈…〉_z so_o little_o prevail_v against_o catholics_n that_o own_o it_o 〈◊〉_d other_o reason_n why_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a supremacy_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d dangerous_a be_v because_o they_o who_o acknowldge_n the_o power_n 〈◊〉_d themselves_o the_o liberty_n of_o judge_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o 〈◊〉_d application_n and_o to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v just_o exercise_v by_o 〈…〉_z who_o censure_n and_o sentence_n be_v limit_v to_o so_o 〈◊〉_d cause_n and_o condition_n know_v to_o every_o catholic_a lawyer_n 〈◊〉_d divin_n that_o they_o can_v hardly_o disturb_v a_o state_n if_o any_o of_o the_o previous_a admonition_n and_o requisite_a formality_n be_v omit_v be_v acknowledge_v will_v employ_v it_o now_o as_o willin●●●_n to_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o english_a monarchy_n as_o his_o 〈◊〉_d do_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o q._n marry_o by_o condescend_v that_o 〈◊〉_d church_n revenue_n may_v be_v spend_v in_o more_o pious_a and_o public_a 〈◊〉_d than_o they_o be_v at_o present_a notwithstanding_o the_o visible_a advantage_n which_o 〈◊〉_d unto_o all_o catholic_a sovereign_n by_o admit_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a jurisdiction_n in_o their_o kingdom_n and_o ●●minions_n and_o the_o little_a or_o no_o danger_n which_o thereby_o can_v come_v 〈◊〉_d protestant_n prince_n yet_o because_o q._n elizabeth_n be_v proceed_v 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n who_o case_n be_v very_o different_a from_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o steward_n undoubted_a heir_n of_o the_o crown_n no_o 〈◊〉_d of_o england_n say_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n must_v trust_v 〈◊〉_d roman_n catholic_n so_o many_o and_o so_o malignant_a be_v 〈◊〉_d suggestion_n and_o suspicion_n which_o these_o minister_n endeavour_v 〈◊〉_d in_o privy_a councillor_n and_o the_o member_n of_o parliament_n 〈◊〉_d and_o all_o this_o to_o reap_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n land_n 〈◊〉_d ●●●●selves_n that_o a_o fancy_v possibility_n without_o any_o 〈◊〉_d of_o disturb_v the_o peace_n and_o government_n be_v preach_v 〈◊〉_d print_v by_o these_o sir_n poll_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n of_o state_n 〈…〉_z roman_a catholics_n uncapable_a of_o serve_v the_o state_n 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v worse_a they_o have_v late_o endeavour_v by_o their_o 〈◊〉_d in_o court_n country_n and_o parliament_n to_o question_v the_o 〈◊〉_d prerogative_n and_o his_o councell_n prudence_n for_o publish_v 〈…〉_z which_o he_o have_v promise_v at_o breda_n in_o favour_n of_o 〈◊〉_d conference_n so_o conscious_a they_o be_v of_o their_o own_o guilt_n 〈◊〉_d they_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o least_o countenance_n show_v to_o 〈◊〉_d will_v discover_v the_o fraud_n whereby_o themselves_o deprive_v 〈◊〉_d estate_n of_o so_o vast_a a_o revenue_n and_o because_o the_o chief_a minister_n 〈◊〉_d state_n be_v out_o of_o their_o piety_n or_o policy_n incline_v to_o 〈◊〉_d moderation_n towards_o tender_a conscience_n and_o the_o protestant_a 〈◊〉_d dare_v not_o oppose_v it_o direct_o they_o cease_v not_o by_o mean_n of_o some_o false_a brethren_n and_o debauch_a friar_n to_o render_v all_o good_a intention_n for_o our_o relief_n uneffectual_a by_o inculcate_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o public_a instrument_n not_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o they_o frame_v in_o king_n james_n his_o reign_n that_o instead_o of_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n temporal_a sovereignty_n give_v he_o a_o unheard_a of_o jurisdiction_n over_o soul_n or_o at_o least_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o ambiguous_a and_o offensive_a word_v thereof_o do_v engage_v even_o catholik_o as_o will_v take_v it_o in_o a_o endless_a quarrel_n with_o their_o spiritual_a superior_n without_o render_v thereby_o any_o service_n to_o their_o temporal_a sovereign_n but_o rather_o make_v themselves_o unfit_a to_o appear_v for_o his_o or_o their_o own_o right_n in_o ecclesiastical_a catholic_a court_n therefore_o as_o well_o to_o satisfy_v the_o state_n concern_v our_o allegiance_n and_o fidelity_n to_o our_o king_n as_o to_o avoid_v the_o obloquy_v and_o artifices_fw-la of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n we_o humble_o offer_v to_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o minister_n 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o shall_v swear_v or_o sign_n any_o instrument_n or_o engagement_n 〈◊〉_d fidelity_n to_o he_o which_o catholic_a subject_n swear_v or_o sign_n to_o their_o catholic_a sovereigns_n to_o exact_v more_o strict_a obedience_n from_o so_o inconsiderable_a a_o party_n as_o we_o be_v under_o a_o protestant_a prince_n against_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n pretention_n than_o any_o catholics_n of_o the_o world_n think_v fit_a either_o in_o conscience_n or_o pruden●●●_n to_o give_v to_o their_o own_o 〈◊〉_d seem_v not_o necessary_a and_o will_v savour_v more_o 〈◊〉_d presumption_n in_o we_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o of_o affection_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n 3._o they_o who_o teach_v that_o king_n 〈…〉_z depose_v for_o heresy_n maintain_v they_o may_v be_v also_o depose_v 〈◊〉_d tyranny_n and_o notwithstanding_o that_o 〈…〉_z their_o sovereign_n tax_n tyranny_n than_o their_o opinion_n 〈◊〉_d yet_o because_o pope_n seldom_o countenance_v subjects_n complaint_n and_o proceed_n against_o their_o prince_n pretend_a tyranny_n none_o fear_v to_o be_v depose_v as_o tyrant_n how_o little_a pope_n have_v intermedle_v with_o protestant_a prince_n if_o not_o persecutor_n be_v visible_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n if_o therefore_o catholic_a king_n apprehend_v no_o danger_n or_o prejudice_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o censure_n against_o tyranny_n because_o they_o be_v so_o spare_v of_o they_o notwithstanding_o the_o inclination_n of_o their_o subject_n to_o solicit_v and_o obey_v such_o censure_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n protestant_n king_n have_v to_o fear_n cens●●●s_v for_o heresy_n whereof_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a be_v no_o less_o spare_v 〈◊〉_d he_o answer_v that_o catholic_a prince_n by_o the_o principle_n of_o 〈◊〉_d religion_n or_o at_o least_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o probability_n and_o p●●sibility_n of_o the_o opinion_n against_o heresy_n and_o tyranny_n must_v 〈◊〉_d the_o hazard_n of_o be_v thaught_v deposable_a in_o those_o case_n we_o 〈◊〉_d protestant_n to_o consider_v whether_o it_o be_v reasonable_a in_o they_o 〈◊〉_d of_o we_o poor_a english_a or_o irish_a subject_n a_o declaration_n 〈◊〉_d those_o opinion_n which_o the_o most_o powerful_a catholic_a 〈◊〉_d of_o christendom_n dare_v not_o contradict_v for_o fear_n either_o of_o 〈◊〉_d christianity_n or_o of_o undergo_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d consistory_n notwithstanding_o their_o temporal_a concern_n 〈◊〉_d countenance_n a_o persuasion_n that_o seem_v to_o check_v their_o regal_a 〈◊〉_d never_o any_o king_n have_v or_o can_v have_v more_o reason_n to_o 〈◊〉_d bellarmin_n opinion_n or_o other_o such_o like_a than_o the_o french_a 〈◊〉_d since_o the_o loss_n of_o navarr_n and_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o 〈…〉_z yet_o whensoever_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o sorbon_n censure_v the_o same_o opinion_n the_o king_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o france_n be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v they_o thanks_o that_o 〈◊〉_d disowned_a and_o declare_v void_a their_o censure_n condemn_v 〈◊〉_d for_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o matter_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d indignation_n and_o of_o be_v hold_v for_o seditious_a and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o public_a repose_n command_v they_o and_o all_o 〈◊〉_d not_o to_o move_v or_o dispute_v any_o question_n of_o that_o nature_n 〈◊〉_d the_o right_a either_o of_o pope_n or_o of_o temporal_a sovereign_n 847._o 〈◊〉_d be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o mounseur_fw-fr bouchet_n a_o french_a author_n 〈◊〉_d richerist_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v suspect_v of_o favour_v 〈◊〉_d sea_n of_o rome_n and_o as_o for_o the_o church_n of_o france_n it_o be_v so_o 〈◊〉_d from_o such_o dispute_v as_o every_o one_o may_v judge_n by_o cardinal_n 〈◊〉_d oration_n in_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a clergy_n to_o the_o state_n of_o th●●_n kingdom_n two_o year_n ago_o monsieur_n talon_n the_o king_n attorney_n object_v to_o some_o doctor_n of_o sorbon_n that_o their_o faculty_n hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o deposition_n of_o king_n but_o they_o declare_v that_o though_o some_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o university_n have_v long_o since_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n yet_o the_o faculty_n never_o resolve_v the_o question_n true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n permit_v not_o their_o subject_n now_o to_o preach_v or_o publish_v any_o such_o doctrine_n and_o judge_n that_o prohibition_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a security_n against_o it_o and_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o protestant_n king_n shall_v not_o think_v the_o same_o a_o sufficient_a security_n for_o themselves_o and_o questionless_a they_o will_v do_v not_o over-officious_a person_n misinform_v the_o minister_n of_o state_n by_o impose_v upon_o they_o that_o the_o church_n of_o france_n do_v practice_v such_o oath_n engagement_n or_o rem●●strances_n as_o the_o parliament_n
that_o neither_o expose_v their_o person_n nor_o open_v their_o purse_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o king_n and_o country_n notwithstanding_o that_o his_o majesty_n the_o nobility_n and_o people_n be_v so_o deep_o engage_v for_o the_o safety_n honour_n and_o trade_n of_o this_o empire_n in_o a_o defensive_a war_n against_o the_o unite_a power_n of_o most_o powerful_a enemy_n and_o that_o the_o parliament_n be_v forcit_fw-la for_o want_n of_o other_o mean_n to_o feed_v the_o king_n and_o be_v his_o faithful_a soldier_n with_o smoke_n of_o chymnys_n whilst_o a_o mean_a ministry_n raise_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o royal_a family_n of_o the_o steward_n do_v swallow_v up_o the_o substance_n of_o these_o kingdom_n case_n how_o ridiculous_a it_o be_v to_o hear_v these_o protestant_a minister_n cry_v out_o sacrilege_n at_o this_o our_o proposal_n as_o if_o they_o have_v any_o spiritual_a character_n or_o any_o right_n to_o what_o they_o possess_v or_o though_o they_o have_v as_o if_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o contribute_v in_o case_n of_o extreme_a necessity_n to_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n the_o undoubted_a catholic_n clergy_n will_v rid_v the_o laity_n of_o any_o scruple_n of_o sacrilege_n for_o apply_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o necessary_a defence_n of_o the_o country_n we_o know_v the_o ancient_a pastor_n and_o bishop_n of_o god_n church_n do_v not_o scruple_n in_o such_o case_n to_o sell_v the_o very_a chalice_n and_o vestment_n of_o the_o altar_n much_o less_o to_o spend_v their_o revenue_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o flock_n but_o indeed_o they_o have_v no_o wife_n nor_o child_n and_o therefore_o need_v not_o be_v solicitous_a to_o buy_v estate_n for_o their_o son_n or_o to_o settle_v jointure_n on_o their_o wife_n or_o to_o raise_v portion_n for_o their_o daughter_n out_o of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n which_o of_o right_n belong_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o who_o be_v more_o poor_a than_o our_o soldier_n and_o seaman_n or_o than_o husbandman_n and_o tradesman_n that_o hitherto_o contribute_v nay_o then_o our_o king_n that_o sacrifice_v his_o revenue_n to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o land_n force_n and_o navy_n 1660._o but_o if_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n be_v confident_a of_o the_o justice_n of_o their_o cause_n why_o do_v they_o not_o come_v to_o a_o trial_n why_o do_v they_o oppose_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n why_o do_v they_o with_o so_o many_o artifices_fw-la decline_v reason_v and_o delude_v the_o people_n 〈◊〉_d their_o religion_n be_v true_a we_o roman_a catholic_n will_v not_o ●●pine_v at_o their_o riches_n catholic_n nor_o at_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n make_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n against_o our_o religion_n and_o against_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o steward_n or_o at_o least_o we_o will_v not_o be_v such_o fool_n as_o not_o to_o be_v hasty_o and_o hearty_o convert_v to_o protestancy_n see_v thereby_o we_o may_v not_o only_o be_v save_v but_o share_n with_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n enjoy_v very_o many_o convenience_n and_o free_v ourselves_o from_o the_o penalty_n and_o incapacity_n whereunto_o we_o be_v subject_a for_o be_v papist_n herein_o they_o may_v believe_v we_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n we_o shall_v be_v obstinate_a against_o a_o truth_n if_o protestancy_n appear_v in_o our_o desire_a conference_n to_o be_v a_o truth_n every_o way_n so_o advantageous_a to_o ourselves_o but_o a_o ill_a cause_n dread_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o a_o free_a and_o public_a hear_n confute_v since_o protestancy_n be_v intrude_v into_o england_n by_o q._n elizabeth_n the_o catholic_n have_v continual_o petition_v and_o press_v for_o a_o public_a trial_n but_o never_o can_v obtain_v that_o favour_n archbishop_n laud_n pag._n 445._o against_o fisher_n give_v this_o reason_n that_o the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o admit_v of_o a_o public_a dispute_n with_o the_o english_a romish_a clergy_n till_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o show_v it_o under_o the_o seal_n or_o power_n of_o rome_n that_o that_o church_n will_v submit_v to_o a_o three_o who_o may_v be_v a_o indifferent_a judge_n between_o they_o and_o we_o or_o a_o general_n council_n which_o council_n though_o general_a he_o say_v pag._n 194._o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o as_o for_o any_o other_o indifferent_a and_o infallible_a judge_n the_o bishop_n think_v there_o be_v none_o as_o yet_o in_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o its_o certain_a that_o a_o judge_n or_o council_n that_o be_v not_o believe_v infallible_a be_v not_o for_o the_o purpose_n because_o neither_o party_n can_v be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o its_o sentence_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o though_o the_o controversy_n can_v be_v decide_v by_o a_o fallible_a judge_n or_o council_n we_o shall_v remain_v still_o divide_v and_o that_o the_o bishop_n well_o know_v but_o some_o thing_n he_o must_v have_v say_v to_o divert_v the_o well_o meaning_n protestant_n laity_n from_o question_v the_o sufficiency_n or_o sincerity_n of_o their_o own_o clergy_n observe_v their_o backwardness_n in_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o our_o so_o just_a demand_n and_o yet_o we_o grant_v to_o they_o in_o q._n mary_n reign_n as_o free_v a_o disputation_n as_o they_o desire_v we_o give_v they_o their_o choice_n of_o book_n and_o notary_n and_o time_n not_o only_o to_o put_v in_o their_o argument_n and_o answer_n in_o writing_n but_o to_o review_v and_o correct_v what_o they_o dislike_v upon_o more_o mature_a deliberation_n to_o archbishop_n laud_n reason_n for_o not_o allow_v a_o conference_n be_v answer_v that_o we_o desire_v so_o much_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o service_n of_o the_o state_n that_o we_o will_v give_v under_o our_o own_o hand_n and_o seal_n the_o power_n of_o rome_n we_o can_v command_v that_o if_o protestant_n will_v admit_v of_o such_o a_o trial_n as_o be_v grant_v to_o they_o in_o england_n and_o to_o their_o party_n in_o france_n which_o we_o have_v relate_v in_o this_o treatise_n we_o be_v content_a to_o submit_v to_o my_o lord_n keeper_n of_o england_n and_o other_o noble_a person_n judgement_n therein_o and_o let_v our_o adversary_n choo_n either_o to_o argue_v or_o answer_v let_v they_o object_v falsification_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n against_o we_o or_o answer_v to_o such_o as_o we_o shall_v charge_v they_o withal_o and_o if_o they_o can_v maintain_v their_o reformation_n without_o such_o fraudulent_a deal_n as_o we_o object_n against_o they_o let_v they_o loose_v the_o church_n revenue_n if_o we_o can_v not_o defend_v our_o religion_n without_o the_o like_o fraud_n let_v we_o not_o only_o be_v debar_v from_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n but_o loose_a our_o life_n notwithstanding_o my_o lord_n keeper_n know_v inclination_n to_o favour_n protestancy_n we_o will_v not_o except_v against_o he_o and_o the_o committee_n sentence_n so_o confident_a be_v we_o of_o the_o justice_n of_o our_o cause_n if_o they_o refuse_v so_o fair_a a_o offer_n though_o they_o keep_v their_o revenue_n without_o doubt_n they_o will_v forfeit_v their_o credit_n and_o be_v as_o much_o lose_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o their_o own_o prelaticks_n as_o of_o fanatic_n and_o as_o the_o protestant_a clergys_n diffidence_n must_v breed_v doubt_n and_o diminish_v the_o esteem_n of_o the_o pastor_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o their_o flock_n so_o may_v it_o give_v the_o protestant_a laity_n full_a assurance_n there_o can_v be_v no_o danger_n in_o embrace_v our_o religion_n which_o so_o learned_a person_n as_o be_v in_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n dare_v not_o encounter_v beside_o the_o late_a change_n of_o their_o prelatic_a form_n of_o ordination_n have_v so_o discredit_v their_o character_n of_o priesthood_n clergy_n and_o episcopacy_n that_o no_o sober_a layman_n will_v fight_v for_o a_o priestly_a function_n confess_v by_o the_o priest_n themselves_o to_o be_v invalid_a and_o what_o confession_n of_o invalidity_n can_v be_v more_o plain_a then_o to_o add_v unto_o their_o old_a form_n the_o word_n priest_n and_o bishop_n force_v thereunto_o by_o the_o argument_n of_o their_o adversary_n seni_fw-la demonstrate_v that_o neither_o of_o those_o function_n have_v be_v hitherto_o sufficient_o express_v in_o their_o ritual_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o the_o character_n can_v not_o be_v give_v by_o form_n so_o unsignificant_a and_o so_o imperfect_a i_o have_v often_o consider_v what_o can_v move_v the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o condemn_v in_o this_o particular_a of_o their_o form_n of_o ordination_n their_o first_o protestant_a ancestor_n and_o to_o condescend_v to_o their_o catholic_n adversary_n in_o a_o matter_n so_o important_a as_o that_o of_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o priestly_a and_o episcopal_a character_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v by_o this_o change_n judge_v hitherto_o by_o themselves_o to_o be_v at_o least_o superfluous_a that_o they_o
confirmation_n of_o the_o authority_n infallibility_a and_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n the_o sanctity_n and_o succession_n whereof_o be_v as_o evident_a also_o as_o our_o convert_n of_o king_n &_o nation_n from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n and_o can_v be_v contradict_v without_o question_v at_o least_o all_o humane_a faith_n and_o history_n a_o church_n and_o religion_n so_o supernatural_o qualify_v can_v be_v prudent_o suspect_v to_o be_v a_o cheat_n or_o humane_a invention_n and_o if_o once_o i_o do_v not_o say_v establish_v but_o permit_v in_o these_o kingdom_n its_o doctrine_n need_v not_o be_v fence_v with_o sanguinary_a statue_n nor_o favour_v by_o any_o penal_a law_n and_o act_n of_o parliament_n for_o uniformity_n all_o which_o rigorous_a proceed_n will_v be_v superfluous_a as_o also_o the_o continual_a care_n and_o vast_a charge_n of_o suppress_v unlawful_a assembly_n the_o absurd_a gesture_n and_o foolish_a fancy_n of_o every_o humorsom_a fellow_n or_o hypocrite_n will_v not_o then_o take_v with_o the_o common_a people_n and_o pass_v for_o motion_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o will_v silly_a tradesman_n be_v hear_v with_o patience_n in_o pulpit_n prate_v nonsense_n and_o comment_n upon_o text_n of_o scripture_n all_o these_o impiety_n and_o disorder_n i_o say_v will_v be_v quash_v when_o liberty_n be_v grant_v to_o declare_v unto_o the_o ignorant_a and_o misinform_a people_n the_o roman_n catholic_n truth_n and_o the_o motive_n that_o induce_v to_o believe_v they_o and_o no_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n be_v more_o incline_v to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n and_o wholesome_a document_n than_o these_o island_n witness_v the_o multitude_n of_o our_o ancient_a saint_n the_o magnificence_n of_o our_o church_n &_o even_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o present_a seeker_n and_o sectary_n in_o their_o mistake_a way_n of_o salvation_n by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v there_o will_v soon_o be_v a_o uniformity_n in_o religion_n in_o these_o kingdom_n if_o the_o roman_n catholic_n be_v tolerate_v that_o the_o king_n will_v have_v a_o considerable_a and_o conscientious_a revenue_n to_o support_v the_o honour_n of_o this_o monarchy_n and_o suppress_v all_o sinister_a design_n by_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o church_n live_n when_o resign_v by_o the_o roman_a clergy_n need_v no_o proof_n i_o believe_v there_o will_v be_v find_v more_o difficulty_n in_o his_o majesty_n to_o accept_v than_o in_o the_o catholic_n clergy_n to_o offer_v such_o a_o donative_n see_v his_o piety_n be_v now_o so_o great_a towards_o unlawful_a minister_n doubtless_o it_o will_v be_v refine_v in_o case_n he_o do_v see_v the_o mistake_n let_v we_o suppose_v therefore_o that_o god_n have_v hear_v our_o continual_a prayer_n and_o will_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o he_o and_o of_o these_o nation_n and_o that_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o error_n of_o their_o education_n in_o such_o a_o case_n i_o say_v the_o roman_a clergy_n ought_v to_o press_v and_o without_o doubt_n will_v their_o revenue_n upon_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o commonwealth_n 1._o to_o let_v the_o world_n see_v they_o seek_v not_o so_o much_o worldly_a interest_n as_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n 2._o because_o the_o king_n catholic_n ancestor_n and_o theit_n subject_n of_o the_o same_o profession_n found_v all_o the_o bishopric_n and_o benefice_n of_o these_o kingdom_n and_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o roman_a catholic_n that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n the_o heir_n of_o the_o founder_n ought_v to_o be_v maintain_v and_o relieve_v by_o the_o foundation_n but_o the_o principal_a reason_n to_o move_v his_o majesty_n not_o to_o reject_v and_o the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n to_o make_v so_o dutiful_a a_o offer_n be_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n there_o be_v of_o a_o great_a public_a revenue_n then_o at_o present_a the_o crown_n do_v possess_v for_o though_o the_o english_a valour_n shall_v force_v advantageous_a article_n of_o peace_n from_o our_o enemy_n that_o peace_n will_v not_o be_v last_v unless_o they_o see_v we_o be_v in_o a_o condition_n to_o force_v the_o performance_n as_o well_o as_o the_o peace_n if_o at_o any_o time_n a_o breach_n of_o article_n shall_v happen_v or_o new_a injury_n be_v offer_v nothing_o be_v more_o uncertain_a than_o the_o solemn_a agreement_n of_o prince_n their_o league_n last_v no_o long_o than_o until_o they_o be_v at_o leisure_n and_o recover_v strength_n to_o renew_v the_o war_n and_o if_o one_o of_o they_o want_v a_o constant_a &_o considerable_a revenue_n he_o and_o his_o subject_n will_v be_v contemn_v and_o his_o dominion_n make_v a_o prey_n to_o his_o more_o powerful_a neighbour_n though_o late_o reconcile_v friend_n the_o best_a pledge_n therefore_o of_o a_o peace_n with_o foreigner_n be_v our_o own_o power_n if_o we_o rely_v whole_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o french_a or_o upon_o the_o worth_n of_o the_o dutch_a we_o shall_v be_v mistake_v and_o repent_v our_o credulity_n but_o shall_v our_o power_n so_o depend_v of_o parliament_n that_o before_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o can_v meet_v or_o ta●es_n be_v raise_v our_o enemy_n may_v be_v land_v and_o ourselves_o so_o distract_v that_o none_o know_v what_o to_o do_v without_o doubt_v our_o power_n must_v depend_v of_o act_n of_o parliament_n espicial_o of_o one_o annex_v the_o church_n revenue_n to_o the_o crown_n see_v no_o other_o find_v do_v appear_v never_o parliament_n do_v give_v great_a proof_n of_o love_n and_o liberality_n to_o a_o king_n than_o this_o present_a but_o the_o more_o people_n have_v give_v the_o less_o able_a they_o be_v to_o give_v their_o will_n be_v still_o the_o same_o their_o ability_n be_v not_o what_o then_o must_v churchman_n who_o profession_n ought_v to_o be_v poverty_n especial_o when_o the_o state_n be_v empoverish_v think_v of_o enjoy_v million_o of_o revenue_n and_o see_v that_o the_o laity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o war_n or_o must_v the_o fnglish_a monarchy_n be_v reduce_v to_o such_o a_o condition_n that_o if_o the_o french_a or_o dutch_a will_v but_o send_v a_o messenger_n to_o have_v a_o place_n of_o importance_n deliver_v to_o they_o it_o must_v be_v do_v because_o the_o king_n have_v not_o money_n to_o maintain_v a_o war_n and_o defend_v his_o subject_n i_o do_v not_o say_v this_o have_v be_v but_o i_o fear_v it_o may_v be_v the_o case_n of_o england_n if_o the_o king_n revenue_n be_v not_o make_v much_o more_o considerable_a than_o they_o be_v and_o how_o they_o may_v be_v considerable_o conscientious_o and_o convenient_o raise_v otherwise_o than_o i_o have_v propose_v by_o the_o land_n of_o the_o church_n i_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o wish_v that_o other_o find_v out_o a_o better_a expedient_a as_o for_o rely_v upon_o extraordinary_a tax_n and_o subsidy_n raise_v from_o the_o empoverish_v and_o discontent_a laity_n by_o new_a act_n of_o parliament_n according_a to_o occasion_n offer_v it_o be_v not_o safe_a for_o that_o such_o tax_n be_v look_v upon_o by_o all_o wise_a man_n to_o be_v more_o dangerous_a than_o durable_a as_o depend_v upon_o a_o popular_a vote_n and_o vogue_n whereupon_o neither_o the_o secret_a and_o solid_a design_n of_o state_n nor_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o monarchy_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o the_o monarch_n all_o which_o require_v a_o constant_a and_o sure_a revenue_n can_v be_v well_o build_v see_v therefore_o that_o extraordinary_a tax_n can_v be_v make_v that_o ordinary_a and_o constant_a revenue_n which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o of_o war_n and_o that_o the_o laity_n can_v contribute_v much_o more_o than_o they_o have_v do_v and_o that_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o clergy_n may_v be_v so_o conscientious_o apply_v to_o the_o crown_n i_o see_v not_o any_o scruple_n of_o sacrilege_n that_o may_v deter_v the_o king_n or_o parliament_n from_o such_o a_o resolution_n there_o be_v not_o one_o catholic_n divine_n think_v it_o sacrilege_n to_o apply_v sacred_a thing_n to_o pious_a use_n and_o what_o use_n can_v be_v more_o pious_a than_o the_o public_a safety_n the_o defence_n of_o king_n and_o country_n the_o ease_n of_o poor_a subject_n the_o maintenance_n of_o soldier_n and_o seaman_n that_o venture_v their_o life_n for_o our_o repose_n or_o than_o pension_n to_o their_o widow_n and_o child_n when_o themselves_o perish_v in_o the_o service_n see_v i_o say_v this_o be_v lawful_a and_o laudable_a in_o all_o other_o country_n i_o see_v not_o why_o our_o bretish_a clergy_n shall_v be_v except_v from_o so_o general_a a_o rule_n and_o except_v from_o so_o particular_a a_o duty_n the_o portugal_n nation_n have_v be_v ever_o most_o orthodox_n and_o pious_a a●d_v since_o their_o late_a separation_n from_o spain_n they_o have_v apply_v the_o revenue_n of_o the_o bishopric_n to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o war_n against_o the_o castilian_n
absolute_a do_v join_v with_o protestant_n their_o power_n will_v be_v render_v useless_a and_o themselves_o odious_a because_o they_o join_v with_o persecutor_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n beside_o the_o spaniard_n who_o interest_n it_o be_v to_o have_v france_n divide_v and_o embroil_v will_v countenance_v our_o design_n and_o contribute_v to_o our_o conquest_n if_o we_o tolerate_a catholic_n which_o now_o he_o dare_v not_o do_v either_o for_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n or_o at_o least_o for_o fear_n of_o lose_v the_o reputation_n and_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n king_n that_o get_v he_o so_o many_o grant_v of_o church_n revenue_n comiendas_fw-la and_o cruzadas_n and_o so_o great_a contibution_n from_o the_o clergy_n if_o he_o join_v with_o we_o as_o now_o we_o be_v in_o recover_v our_o right_n he_o will_v only_o gain_v the_o name_n and_o opinion_n of_o a_o fautor_n of_o heretic_n and_o loose_v the_o donative_n and_o devotion_n of_o his_o church_n friend_n and_o perhaps_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o lay_v subject_n but_o if_o england_n do_v grant_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n it_o be_v much_o more_o for_o his_o interest_n to_o dispose_v of_o his_o daughter_n and_o with_o they_o of_o flanders_n to_o our_o royal_a family_n than_o to_o the_o german_a house_n of_o austria_n hitherto_o the_o politician_n of_o europe_n have_v be_v employ_v in_o keep_v the_o scale_n equal_a between_o france_n and_o spain_n to_o the_o end_n neither_o of_o those_o two_o great_a crown_n may_v gain_v too_o far_o upon_o their_o neighbour_n and_o so_o by_o degree_n devour_v all_o petty_a state_n and_o prince_n and_o afterward_o endanger_v other_o monarch_n hence_o every_o crown_n concern_v itself_o not_o only_o in_o protect_a ally_n but_o in_o foment_v rebellion_n as_o q._n elizabeth_n do_v that_o of_o holland_n and_o of_o the_o other_o unite_a province_n but_o of_o late_a the_o case_n be_v alter_v holland_n now_o cope_n with_o england_n the_o spaniard_n have_v have_v so_o many_o loss_n of_o army_n navy_n and_o kingdom_n that_o now_o he_o be_v more_o pity_v then_o fear_v or_o envy_v and_o france_n be_v arrive_v to_o such_o a_o height_n of_o power_n by_o unite_n to_o itself_o the_o province_n of_o lorain_n alsatia_n and_o rossillon_n the_o city_n of_o perpignan_n and_o pignorole_v the_o key_n of_o spain_n and_o italy_n the_o great_a part_n of_o artois_n and_o the_o most_o important_a town_n of_o flanders_n and_o other_o province_n and_o moreover_o the_o french_a king_n have_v settle_v so_o vast_a a_o revenue_n upon_o his_o crown_n independent_a of_o his_o parliament_n or_o of_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o people_n that_o he_o and_o france_n be_v become_v a_o terror_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n man_n which_o therefore_o censure_v our_o english_a statesman_n for_o not_o have_v close_v in_o time_n with_o spain_n and_o for_o have_v support_v portugal_n immediate_o after_o our_o king_n restauration_n we_o shall_v rather_o say_v they_o have_v permit_v spain_n by_o recover_v of_o portugal_n to_o counterpoise_v france_n and_o put_v itself_o into_o a_o condition_n of_o revenge_v the_o manifold_a injury_n do_v by_o the_o french_a to_o the_o catholic_n and_o british_a monarchy_n and_o thereby_o secure_v ourselves_o and_o frustrate_v the_o design_n and_o attempt_n which_o be_v foresee_v will_v be_v make_v by_o so_o powerful_a prudent_a and_o warlike_a a_o monarch_n as_o lovis_n 14._o against_o england_n it_o be_v the_o likely_a kingdom_n to_o check_v his_o greatness_n and_o prevent_v his_o be_v universal_a monarch_n beside_o they_o say_v we_o can_v not_o but_o expect_v a_o visit_n from_o so_o unquiet_a emulous_a and_o neighbour_a a_o nation_n as_o france_n in_o case_n they_o be_v peaceable_a at_o home_n and_o spain_n busy_v with_o portugal_n we_o have_v visit_v they_o so_o often_o heretofore_o in_o their_o own_o country_n and_o court_n and_o indeed_o they_o never_o since_o have_v be_v at_o leisure_n nor_o in_o a_o posture_n to_o return_v we_o a_o visit_n until_o now_o these_o reason_n may_v have_v move_v we_o to_o have_v have_v be_v more_o kind_a to_o spain_n especial_o see_v our_o alliance_n with_o portugal_n for_o which_o we_o forsake_v spain_n add_v not_o the_o island_n azore_n or_o terceras_n to_o our_o empire_n as_o the_o world_n imagine_v it_o will_v the_o portuguese_n not_o be_v in_o a_o condition_n to_o refuse_v any_o demand_n when_o they_o seek_v our_o friendship_n and_o be_v abandon_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v the_o discourse_n and_o censure_n of_o stranger_n which_o be_v a_o mere_a matter_n of_o state_n we_o wave_v as_o improper_a for_o our_o profession_n yet_o common_a sense_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o azore_n or_o terceras_n can_v not_o be_v easy_o obtain_v at_o least_o not_o long_o enjoy_v by_o protestant_n see_v the_o native_n of_o those_o island_n be_v all_o catholic_n and_o rather_o than_o live_v in_o persecution_n under_o a_o protestant_a government_n will_v in_o all_o likelihood_n have_v submit_v to_o the_o spaniard_n and_o we_o be_v catholic_n or_o tolerate_v catholic_n without_o doubt_n those_o island_n may_v have_v be_v we_o what_o little_a advantage_n our_o sovereign_n be_v like_a to_o have_v in_o the_o other_o world_n by_o be_v protestant_n have_v be_v hitherto_o sufficien_o declare_v in_o this_o section_n we_o only_o show_v how_o much_o they_o lose_v in_o this_o world_n by_o their_o protestant_a zeal_n of_o not_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n king_n james_n as_o the_o world_n know_v be_v a_o very_a wise_a prince_n and_o think_v it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o england_n to_o be_v in_o a_o perpetual_a league_n with_o spain_n against_o france_n how_o far_o the_o spaniard_n will_v engage_v with_o we_o at_o present_a or_o trust_v promise_n and_o article_n confirm_v by_o the_o protestant_n public_a faith_n i_o do_v not_o know_v but_o if_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n we_o do_v tolerate_v roman_a catholic_n it_o will_v be_v evident_a to_o the_o spaniard_n themselves_o that_o it_o be_v great_a conveniency_n and_o security_n for_o the_o spanish_a monarchy_n to_o ma●ch_v continual_o with_o the_o prince_n of_o england_n spain_n then_o with_o the_o german_a austrian_n and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v more_o for_o their_o purpose_n to_o give_v the_o netherlands_o which_o be_v a_o vast_a charge_n to_o spain_n and_o of_o no_o concern_v but_o to_o busy_a france_n as_o a_o portion_n with_o their_o infanta_n to_o our_o king_n then_o to_o the_o archduke_n or_o to_o the_o emperor_n the_o reason_n be_v clear_a our_o king_n can_v be_v divert_v from_o invade_v france_n and_o relieve_v flanders_n or_o spain_n itself_o by_o turk_n swede_n german_a prince_n or_o elector_n as_o the_o emperor_n and_o austrian_n may_v our_o king_n may_v secure_v their_o spanish_a west-india_n fleet_n &_o frustrate_v all_o attempt_n against_o they_o which_o the_o emperor_n can_v our_o king_n have_v a_o hereditary_a right_n not_o only_o to_o normandy_n aquitain_n and_o anio●_n but_o to_o all_o france_n and_o this_o right_n together_o with_o our_o former_a success_n in_o that_o kingdom_n make_v we_o look_v upon_o it_o still_o more_o as_o our_o own_o than_o some_o titular_a king_n of_o jerusalem_n do_v upon_o the_o holy_a land_n we_o retain_v still_o hope_n of_o calais_n the_o loss_n whereof_o occasion_v q._n mary_n death_n this_o hereditary_a right_n and_o hope_n of_o recover_a france_n make_v we_o as_o irreconciliable_a to_o the_o french_a as_o the_o spaniard_n be_v the_o german_a house_n of_o austria_n have_v no_o such_o grudge_n or_o ground_n of_o a_o perpetual_a and_o immediate_a quarrel_n against_o the_o french_a and_o therefore_o be_v not_o so_o fit_a to_o join_v in_o a_o league_n offensive_a and_o defensive_a with_o spain_n against_o the_o french_a king_n as_o england_n be_v and_o the_o peace_n of_o munster_n show_v that_o the_o german_a austrian_n will_v forsake_v the_o spanish_a austrian_n sometime_o and_o that_o their_o interest_n may_v be_v separate_v as_o relate_v to_o france_n but_o the_o english_a and_o spanish_a interest_n in_o opposition_n to_o france_n be_v not_o separable_a wherefore_o if_o any_o shall_v live_v to_o see_v england_n tolerate_v catholic_n religion_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o he_o will_v see_v a_o more_o strict_a league_n and_o alliance_n between_o england_n and_o spain_n then_o ever_o have_v be_v see_v between_o spain_n and_o austria_n not_o only_o by_o marriage_n of_o the_o royal_a family_n but_o much_o more_o by_o a_o mutual_a wedding_n of_o each_o other_o interest_n and_o then_o we_o may_v rational_o expect_v at_o least_o cautionary_a town_n in_o flanders_n as_o convenient_a place_n for_o our_o retreat_n and_o for_o a_o free_a passage_n into_o france_n or_o rather_o as_o absolute_a a_o donation_n of_o the_o whole_a country_n as_o the_o archduke_n albertus_n have_v whereas_o whilst_o we_o continue_v protestant_n or_o at_o least_o persecutor_n neither_o will_v
the_o spaniard_n hear_v of_o such_o a_o proposition_n nor_o the_o catholic_n native_n accept_v of_o we_o if_o their_o master_n will_v grant_v it_o the_o spaniard_n understand_v how_o interwoven_a the_o interest_n of_o their_o monarchy_n be_v with_o we_o in_o case_n we_o give_v liberty_n to_o catholic_n but_o think_v it_o not_o policy_n to_o trust_v we_o much_o upon_o any_o other_o term_n and_o desire_v our_o conversion_n or_o a_o toleration_n not_o only_o out_o of_o charity_n to_o other_o but_o out_o of_o conveniency_n to_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v so_o earnest_a with_o our_o late_a king_n in_o spain_n to_o renounce_v his_o protestancy_n and_o some_o attribute_n to_o his_o aversion_n against_o the_o catholic_n profession_n the_o breach_n of_o the_o spanish_a match_n we_o see_v how_o they_o send_v three_o ambassador_n one_o upon_o another_o to_o demand_v the_o late_a royal_a princess_n of_o orange_n for_o the_o prince_n of_o spain_n not_o doubt_v but_o that_o in_o her_o tender_a year_n she_o will_v have_v be_v bring_v to_o be_v of_o her_o intend_a spouse_n his_o religion_n we_o have_v indeed_o be_v most_o happy_a in_o the_o person_n and_o royal_a issue_n of_o our_o virtuous_a queen_n and_o gracious_a queen_n mother_n and_o yet_o the_o french_a confess_v they_o do_v not_o that_o favour_n unto_o we_o for_o any_o happiness_n they_o wish_v we_o 295._o but_o to_o compass_v their_o own_o end_n and_o obtain_v some_o advantage_n of_o our_o late_a king_n when_o the_o passion_n of_o love_n to_o his_o beautiful_a spouse_n make_v he_o forget_v the_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o be_v averse_a from_o match_v in_o her_o family_n our_o alliance_n with_o spain_n be_v conjunction_n of_o both_o monarchys_n against_o a_o irreconciliable_a and_o common_a enemy_n france_n they_o be_v not_o only_o private_a contract_n between_o the_o marry_a prince_n but_o public_a concern_v of_o their_o loyal_a people_n the_o puritan_n always_o oppose_v they_o for_o that_o they_o know_v match_n with_o spain_n engage_v that_o monarchy_n in_o cross_v their_o presbyterian_a plot_n and_o design_n against_o our_o monarch_n they_o will_v not_o have_v presume_v to_o rebel_n against_o charles_n the_o i._o have_v it_o not_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o foment_n rebellion_n against_o the_o lawful_a king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o english_a king_n of_o france_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o spain_n to_o maintain_v the_o right_n of_o our_o king_n increase_v their_o power_n and_o offer_v they_o conveniency_n and_o help_n to_o recover_v their_o own_o in_o france_n we_o may_v therefore_o say_v with_o truth_n that_o the_o french_a king_n and_o minister_n seek_v our_o alliance_n thereby_o to_o lessen_v our_o power_n but_o the_o spaniard_n to_o increase_v it_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o intention_n of_o prince_n by_o their_o interest_n it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o spain_n that_o england_n be_v powerful_a it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o destroy_v both_o it_o and_o that_o line_n which_o claim_v a_o right_a to_o france_n we_o see_v how_o much_o addict_v he_o and_o his_o minister_n be_v to_o the_o late_a usurper_n and_o rebel_n by_o their_o kindness_n to_o cromwell_n and_o to_o his_o son_n it_o do_v appear_v they_o have_v rather_o any_o line_n shall_v reign_v then_o the_o right_n and_o because_o our_o king_n ancient_n right_o to_o france_n if_o they_o do_v favour_n catholic_n will_v in_o all_o liklihood_n give_v they_o foot_v in_o normandy_n and_o aquitain_n some_o politian_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o french_a statesman_n like_v well_o enough_o of_o protestancy_n in_o england_n how_o far_o their_o christianity_n do_v incline_v they_o to_o wish_v our_o king_n and_o these_o kingdom_n be_v catholic_n we_o can_v tell_v but_o their_o policy_n and_o proceed_n seem_v not_o show_v any_o great_a zeal_n for_o our_o conversion_n fear_v perhaps_o that_o popery_n may_v make_v we_o popular_a in_o france_n and_o put_v we_o into_o a_o condition_n of_o recover_v our_o own_o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n of_o state_n wherein_o i_o be_o engage_v against_o my_o will_n by_o the_o impertinency_n and_o importunity_n of_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v that_o our_o cotholick_a religion_n be_v disadvantageous_a to_o these_o kingdom_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o too_o great_a influence_n such_o humane_a consideration_n as_o these_o have_v upon_o state_n minister_n in_o their_o choice_n and_o settlement_n of_o divine_a worship_n in_o commonwealth_n i_o desire_v the_o judicious_a reader_n will_v reflect_v upon_o the_o situation_n and_o fertility_n of_o these_o island_n the_o honest_a disposition_n and_o warlike_a genius_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n the_o irreconciliable_a quarrel_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o we_o the_o interest_n of_o spain_n in_o promote_a these_o our_o right_n and_o then_o after_o mature_a consideration_n let_v he_o be_v judge_n whether_o any_o monarchy_n in_o christendom_n have_v such_o mean_n and_o may_v make_v such_o friend_n to_o raise_v itself_o without_o injustice_n into_o a_o great_a empire_n and_o what_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o all_o these_o mean_n and_o friend_n be_v render_v unprofitable_a by_o our_o persecute_v the_o old_a faith_n and_o by_o profess_v a_o new_a religion_n that_o divide_v we_o at_o home_n make_v our_o government_n odious_a to_o such_o as_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o subject_n abroad_o and_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o true_a friendship_n and_o succour_n of_o spain_n who_o interest_n it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v or_o at_o least_o do_v tolerate_v catholic_n and_o be_v so_o considerable_a as_o to_o gain_v our_o own_o or_o by_o endeavour_v to_o regain_v france_n be_v able_a to_o divert_v the_o french_a from_o invade_v spain_n italy_n and_o flanders_n this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o think_v fit_a and_o perhaps_o more_o than_o some_o will_v think_v i_o ought_v to_o say_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n but_o something_o must_v have_v be_v answer_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o our_o politic_a controversor_n who_o continual_o harp_n upon_o this_o string_n of_o reason_n of_o state_n in_o their_o book_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n pretend_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o interest_n and_o greatness_n of_o our_o king_n with_o the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o their_o subject_n therefore_o leave_v this_o argument_n i_o will_v return_v to_o that_o which_o be_v more_o proper_a for_o my_o profession_n and_o show_v how_o manifest_o god_n have_v confirm_v our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o confute_v the_o protestant_a persuasion_n by_o miracle_n which_o be_v the_o great_a evidence_n that_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o nature_n and_o merit_n of_o christian_a belief_n for_o every_o point_n wherein_o protestant_n &_o we_o differ_v i_o will_v relate_v miracle_n wrought_v in_o favour_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o our_o sense_n of_o scripture_n against_o they_o not_o record_v by_o uncertain_a or_o obscure_a author_n but_o by_o the_o prime_a saint_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o age_n wherein_o they_o live_v the_o four_o part_n the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n in_o every_o particular_a wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n confirm_v by_o undeniable_a miracle_n sect_n i._o that_o such_o miracle_n as_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o the_o canonization_n of_o saint_n be_v true_a miracle_n and_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o confirm_v can_v not_o be_v reject_v without_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o god_n veracity_n and_o how_o every_o protestant_n do_v see_v true_a miracle_n though_o he_o do_v not_o reflect_v upon_o they_o in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n by_o miracle_n approve_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n i_o understand_v such_o miracle_n as_o induce_v the_o say_a church_n to_o canonize_v and_o worship_v for_o saint_n the_o person_n by_o who_o prayer_n or_o relic_n they_o be_v wrought_v as_o for_o other_o miracle_n though_o i_o know_v many_o not_o mention_v in_o the_o act_n and_o process_n of_o saint_n canonisation_n be_v true_a so_o doubt_v i_o not_o but_o some_o vulgar_o report_v may_v be_v false_o but_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n whole_o impertinent_a to_o my_o design_n and_o the_o dispute_n against_o protestant_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o my_o purpose_n and_o their_o confusion_n that_o some_o true_a miracle_n have_v be_v and_o be_v wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o that_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n which_o they_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o and_o we_o believe_v and_o first_o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o no_o confessor_n martyr_n have_v a_o privilege_n martyrdom_n itself_o be_v a_o notorious_a miracle_n be_v canonize_v or_o worship_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n before_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o see_v authentic_a proof_n of_o supernatural_a miracle_n wrought_v by_o those_o confessor_n or_o their_o relic_n
protestant_n none_o can_v ever_o prove_v there_o be_v one_o true_a miracle_n wrought_v to_o confirm_v the_o protestant_n doctrine_n or_o their_o pretend_a authority_n for_o reform_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n protestant_n be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o miracle_n be_v cease_v and_o that_o we_o be_v diabolical_a or_o counterfeit_a because_o no_o true_a bishop_n be_v protestant_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o can_v have_v no_o priest_n ordain_v and_o so_o their_o priesthood_n must_v have_v perish_v after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o first_o apostatas_fw-la luther_n and_o other_o the_o protestant_a reformer_n and_o church_n teach_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v priest_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o their_o 39_o article_n and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n 8._o eliz._n 1._o sect_n iu._n of_o the_o protestant_a prelatic_a church_n of_o england_n the_o occasion_n of_o k._n henry_n the_o 8._o divorce_n from_o q._n catharin_n and_o of_o his_o revolt_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v his_o passion_n to_o a_o bullen_n the_o word_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n to_o herod_n concern_v his_o brother_n wife_n absurd_o apply_v to_o k._n henrys_n marriage_n with_o his_o brother_n widow_n how_o zealous_o he_o have_v former_o maintain_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n how_o cruel_o he_o afterward_o persecute_v the_o professor_n thereof_o and_o how_o impious_o he_o judge_v s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n rob_v his_o shrine_n and_o burn_v his_o relic_n the_o catholic_n prince_n reject_v his_o embasy_n and_o solicitation_n for_o imitate_v his_o example_n in_o assume_v the_o supremacy_n and_o how_o much_o the_o protestant_n prince_n be_v trouble_v and_o ashamed_a that_o he_o make_v his_o lust_n the_o motive_n of_o his_o reformation_n how_o incredible_a a_o thing_n be_v the_o english_a supremacy_n k._n henry_n 8._o at_o length_n resolve_v to_o renounce_v it_o and_o return_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a king_n but_o stand_v upon_o such_o term_n and_o differrd_v it_o so_o long_o that_o he_o die_v in_o schism_n excommunicate_v and_o despair_v of_o god_n mercy_n his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n be_v break_v before_o his_o body_n be_v bury_v the_o earl_n of_o hartford_n make_v himself_o protector_n and_o bring_v into_o england_n the_o sacramenrian_a or_o the_o zuinglian_a heresy_n against_o k._n henrys_n last_o will_v and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n then_o in_o force_n without_o a_o parliament_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n and_o southampton_n and_o other_o of_o the_o 16._o trustee_n name_v governor_n by_o k._n henry_n 8._o during_o the_o minority_n of_o edw._n 6._o subsect_v i._n how_o seamor_n be_v direct_v and_o destroy_v by_o dudley_n duke_n of_o northumberland_n the_o say_v dudley_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_n in_o his_o judgement_n as_o himself_o confess_v at_o his_o death_n concur_v to_o establish_v protestancy_n in_o england_n design_v thereby_o to_o unsettle_v the_o state_n and_o make_v way_n for_o exclude_v the_o right_a heir_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o crown_v his_o own_o family_n which_o he_o effect_v by_o exclude_v q._n mary_n for_o be_v a_o catholic_n and_o by_o marry_v his_o son_n to_o the_o lady_n jane_n grey_n who_o have_v no_o other_o right_n to_o the_o kingdom_n but_o what_o her_o zeal_n to_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o clergy_n give_v she_o what_o wicked_a man_n and_o great_a cheat_n be_v cranmer_n and_o his_o comrade_n that_o compose_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n that_o of_o sacrament_n rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o how_o the_o common_a people_n be_v make_v believe_v the_o change_n be_v not_o of_o religion_n but_o of_o language_n sect_n v._n of_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n they_o contain_v only_o some_o general_a notion_n of_o christianity_n and_o be_v applicable_a to_o all_o dissent_v sect_n of_o protestancy_n as_o presbytery_n zuinglianism_n etc._n etc._n the_o design_n of_o the_o composer_n have_v be_v rather_o to_o give_v man_n a_o liberty_n of_o not_o believe_v the_o particular_n of_o christian_a religion_n then_o of_o tie_v they_o to_o any_o certain_a point_n thereof_o or_o to_o any_o faith_n therefore_o they_o declare_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v fallible_a and_o determine_v no_o certain_a canonical_a scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o make_v the_o doctrine_n that_o luther_n learn_v of_o the_o devil_n against_o the_o mass_n tradition_n and_o pray_v to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n part_n of_o their_o creed_n as_o also_o the_o tenet_n against_o spiritual_a character_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o priesthood_n art_n 25._o reject_v imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o not_o institute_v by_o christ._n in_o the_o 2._o last_o article_n they_o endeavour_v in_o vain_a to_o suppress_v the_o error_n of_o anabaptist_n especial_o that_o of_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o other_o man_n good_n in_o vain_a i_o say_v because_o in_o their_o former_a article_n they_o declare_v its_o lawful_a for_o protestant_n to_o dispossess_v the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n of_o their_o good_n and_o dignity_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o private_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o anabaptist_n pretend_v no_o more_o but_o that_o its_o lawful_a for_o themselves_o to_o deal_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n with_o prelaticks_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o can_v be_v no_o disparity_n give_v so_o that_o the_o two_o last_o article_n of_o the_o 39_o as_o also_o that_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n be_v against_o a_o evident_a parity_n of_o reason_n in_o their_o own_o protestant_a principle_n sect_n vi._n a_o particular_a account_n of_o the_o revolution_n which_o these_o 39_o article_n cause_v in_o england_n and_o how_o they_o may_v work_v always_o the_o same_o effect_n if_o there_o be_v such_o politic_a and_o popular_a head_n among_o we_o as_o dudley_n crumwell_n and_o many_o of_o the_o last_o long_a parliament_n q._n mary_n reign_n how_o much_o endanger_v by_o protestant_a design_n and_o rebellion_n duke_n dudleys_n speech_n at_o his_o death_n the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n restore_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o the_o protestant_n decree_v to_o be_v heresy_n and_o schism_n as_o also_o the_o force_n and_o fraud_n of_o k._n henry_n 8._o divorce_n discover_v and_o his_o marriage_n with_o q._n catharin_n of_o spain_n declare_v valid_a the_o roman_a clergys_n resignation_n of_o the_o church_n revenue_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o present_a possessor_n q._n elizabeth_n intrusion_n against_o the_o right_n of_o the_o steward_n be_v effect_v by_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o protestant_a faction_n for_o suppress_v of_o popery_n sect_n vii_o notwithstanding_o that_o q._n elizabeth_n be_v declare_v illegitimat_fw-la by_o 3._o act_n of_o several_a parliament_n never_o yet_o repeal_v she_o possess_v herself_o of_o the_o croun_n and_o exclude_v the_o queen_n of_o scot_n the_o lawful_a and_o immediate_a heir_n to_o q._n marry_o late_o decease_v by_o the_o advice_n of_o cecil_n and_o other_o she_o revive_v protestancy_n and_o the_o supremacy_n thereby_o to_o excuse_v her_o illegitimacy_n she_o institute_v a_o new_a kind_a of_o clergy_n the_o prelatic_a protestant_a bishop_n neither_o have_v nor_o have_v any_o other_o character_n of_o episcopacy_n but_o what_o the_o great_a seal_n and_o her_o temporal_a law_n give_v they_o any_o lay_v person_n may_v consecrat_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o he_o have_v the_o king_n commission_n to_o do_v it_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v superfluous_a according_a to_o the_o act._n 8._o eliz._n 1._o and_o 25._o article_n of_o the_o 39_o how_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n divide_v protestant_n and_o make_v the_o catholic_n more_o constant_a the_o simplicity_n of_o some_o protestant_a writer_n pretend_v that_o the_o pope_n offer_v to_o confirm_v the_o english_a liturgy_n if_o q._n elizabeth_n will_v acknowledge_v his_o jurisdiction_n sect_n viii_o reason_n why_o q._n elizabeth_n in_o her_o long_a reign_n can_v not_o settle_v her_o protestant_a religion_n nor_o gain_v credit_n for_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n neither_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o her_o successor_n to_o make_v the_o generality_n of_o her_o subject_n to_o have_v any_o esteem_n for_o either_o sect_n ix_o how_o injurious_a and_o prejudicial_a the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v be_v to_o the_o royal_a family_n of_o the_o stevards_o and_o how_o zealous_a they_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v in_o promote_a the_o same_o it_o prefer_v not_o only_a q._n elizabeth_n but_o also_o any_o natural_a child_n of_o she_o before_o the_o line_n of_o the_o steward_n whereof_o see_v the_o 8._o sect_n ●in_v how_o dexterous_o k._n james_n play_v his_o game_n and_o how_o they_o who_o murder_v his_o mother_n be_v force_v to_o invite_v he_o to_o the_o crown_n
of_o england_n of_o his_o design_n to_o reform_v the_o principle_n and_o liberty_n of_o protestancy_n intend_v thereby_o to_o render_v it_o less_o dangerous_a to_o lawful_a sovereign_n and_o monarchy_n how_o k._n charles_n 1._o pursue_v his_o father_n design_n but_o his_o suffering_n and_o death_n demonstrat_fw-la the_o impossibility_n of_o confine_v the_o protestant_a liberty_n within_o the_o rule_n of_o government_n or_o reason_n by_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n every_o particular_a person_n be_v a_o supreme_a judge_n in_o spiritual_a affair_n and_o may_v more_o easy_o apply_v and_o abuse_v that_o prerogative_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o sovereign_n than_o the_o pope_n can_v his_o papal_a supremacy_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o great_a providence_n of_o god_n when_o any_o protestant_a king_n of_o england_n escape_v to_o be_v judge_v and_o depose_v by_o his_o subject_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o protestancy_n and_o of_o the_o inconsistency_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n with_o christian_a piety_n and_o peaceable_a government_n sect_n i._n the_o unreasonableness_n and_o inconsistency_n of_o protestancy_n with_o christian_a piety_n or_o policy_n prove_v by_o the_o very_a fundamental_a principle_n of_o all_o protestant_a reformation_n which_o principle_n be_v a_o supposition_n of_o the_o fallibility_n and_o fall_n of_o the_o visible_a catholic_n church_n from_o the_o pure_a and_o primitive_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n to_o damnable_a error_n and_o notorious_a superstition_n such_o a_o change_n be_v demonstrate_v both_o incredible_a and_o impossible_a sect_n ii_o the_o protestant_n proof_n of_o such_o a_o change_n be_v their_o pretend_a cleverness_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v demonstrate_v that_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a in_o any_o text_n controvert_v between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n that_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n incline_v to_o vice_n the_o catholic_n principle_n to_o virtue_n prove_v in_o many_o particular_n the_o invisibility_n of_o the_o church_n a_o ridiculous_a comment_n sect_n iii_o the_o protestant_a letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n doctor_n cousin_n his_n scholastical_a history_n of_o the_o english_a canon_n of_o scripture_n confute_v as_o also_o his_o exception_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n canon_n the_o lutheran_n church_n of_o germany_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o english_a canon_n of_o scripture_n subsect_v i._n doctor_n cousin_n now_o bp._n of_o duresme_fw-fr his_o exception_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n answer_v the_o legality_n of_o a_o council_n as_o well_o as_o of_o a_o parliament_n may_v stand_v with_o the_o absence_n of_o many_o member_n if_o they_o be_v summon_v and_o expect_v the_o absurdity_n of_o protestant_a writer_n except_v against_o the_o want_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n whereas_o themselves_o make_v new_a religion_n and_o reformation_n by_o a_o single_a voice_n of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o england_n by_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o twelve_o person_n name_v by_o the_o parliament_n to_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n seven_o man_n be_v think_v sufficient_a to_o do_v the_o work_n and_o cast_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n protestant_n bishop_n can_v no_o more_o pretend_v to_o sit_v and_o define_v in_o a_o general_a council_n then_o proclaim_v rebel_n can_v pretend_v to_o vote_n in_o a_o lawful_a parliament_n it_o be_v as_o reasonable_a the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v condemn_v heretic_n and_o judge_v all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v that_o a_o king_n and_o parliament_n condemn_v rebel_n and_o judge_v suit_n in_o law_n a_o new_a definition_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v no_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v only_o a_o declaration_n of_o our_o obligation_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o former_o have_v be_v reveal_v but_o not_o sufficient_o propose_v doctor_n cousin_n his_n egregious_a falsification_n of_o belarmin_n his_o wrest_a word_n of_o st._n austin_n and_o st._n hierom._n sect_n iu._n the_o protestant_a translation_n of_o scripture_n be_v fraudulent_a and_o false_a no_o certainty_n of_o christian_a faith_n can_v be_v build_v upon_o they_o protestant_n admit_v no_o copy_n or_o translation_n to_o be_v authentic_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v at_o liberty_n to_o reject_v what_o they_o do_v not_o fancy_v of_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o sense_n the_o vulgar_a latin_a be_v authentic_a scripture_n how_o corrupt_a be_v all_o english_a bibles_n how_o in_o k._n edward_n 6._o his_o reign_n cranmer_n and_o the_o first_o apostle_n of_o english_a protestancy_n change_v the_o very_a text_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n three_o several_a time_n protestant_n make_v the_o apostle_n fallible_a in_o doctrine_n even_o after_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o consequence_n must_v hold_v their_o write_n or_o scripture_n to_o be_v fallible_a subsect_v i._n many_o particular_a instance_n of_o protestant_a corruption_n in_o the_o english_a bibles_n to_o asert_v the_o protestant_n and_o prelatic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o image_n against_o ordination_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n against_o the_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o mass_n against_o vow_n of_o chastity_n to_o favour_v the_o king_n supremacy_n how_o fond_o these_o corruption_n be_v excuse_v by_o whitaker_n and_o how_o absurd_o scripture_n be_v make_v speak_v according_a to_o the_o protestant_a translation_n what_o small_a hope_n there_o be_v that_o a_o clergy_n which_o corrupt_v scripture_n or_o continue_v and_o countenance_v corruption_n of_o scripture_n will_v repent_v or_o recant_v their_o error_n and_o how_o little_a reason_n the_o protestant_a laity_n have_v to_o rely_v upon_o their_o clergys_n sincerity_n or_o upon_o their_o english_a scripture_n sect_n v._n the_o protestant_a interpretation_n be_v not_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n the_o principal_a part_n of_o god_n word_n be_v the_o sense_n he_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n together_o with_o the_o letter_n it_o be_v against_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n will_v be_v more_o careful_a of_o preserve_v the_o letter_n then_o of_o preserve_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o protestant_n be_v unexcusable_a for_o take_v the_o letter_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o reject_v the_o sense_n the_o holy_a father_n bid_v we_o receive_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o the_o letter_n from_o the_o church_n a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o heresy_n to_o do_v the_o contrary_n it_o be_v at_o least_o 16._o to_o one_o that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a and_o the_o protestant_n fall_v sect_n vi._n no_o protestant_a church_n have_v a_o true_a ministry_n miracle_n succession_n of_o doctrine_n or_o sanctity_n of_o life_n their_o extraordinary_a vocation_n be_v ridiculous_a and_o incredible_a it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v send_v minister_n to_o contradict_v doctrine_n confirm_v with_o so_o many_o sign_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o approbation_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n be_v god_n never_o send_v such_o vicious_a man_n as_o the_o protestant_a reformer_n be_v to_o reform_v his_o church_n either_o in_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n if_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n have_v be_v true_a god_n will_v have_v wrought_v miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o seduce_a papist_n as_o protestant_n confess_v he_o do_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jndian_o japonians_n and_o china_n what_o wicked_a man_n be_v luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n beza_n cranmer_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o comrade_n that_o frame_v the_o religion_n and_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o how_o little_a credit_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n deserve_v the_o parliament_n that_o confirm_v the_o same_o calvin_n miracle_n at_o geneva_n foretell_v by_o tertullian_n sect_n vii_o the_o conversion_n of_o pagan_a king_n and_o kingdom_n to_o christianity_n foretell_v in_o scripture_n be_v a_o more_o clear_a sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n than_o any_o other_o miracle_n and_o not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o church_n but_o in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n acknowledge_v by_o learned_a protestant_n of_o barlow_n threescore_o invisible_a queen_n convert_v by_o protestant_n no_o great_a a_o absurdity_n than_o their_o invisible_a church_n the_o vain_a endeavour_n of_o calvin_n and_o other_o protestant_n to_o convert_v heathen_a nation_n bezas_n despair_n of_o success_n in_o that_o ministry_n and_o his_o advice_n to_o protestant_n to_o leave_v that_o labour_n to_o the_o jesuit_n and_o rather_o busy_a themselves_o at_o home_n tertullia_n say_v that_o its_o a_o sign_n of_o heretic_n to_o pervert_v christian_n not_o convert_v pagan_n may_v be_v proper_o apply_v to_o protestant_n their_o success_n in_o propagate_a their_o new_a gospel_n no_o
the_o example_n of_o other_o protestant_a church_n whence_o follow_v continual_a discontent_n and_o design_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o these_o protestant_a nation_n against_o their_o prelatic_a clergy_n and_o the_o little_a esteem_n and_o affection_n there_o be_v for_o the_o same_o clergy_n among_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o how_o unsafe_a it_o be_v for_o the_o prince_n and_o government_n to_o establish_v by_o law_n a_o religion_n and_o clergy_n so_o genera_o hate_v and_o that_o acknowledge_v itself_o to_o be_v fallible_a in_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o for_o all_o they_o know_v lead_v their_o flock_n to_o eternal_a damnation_n law_n enact_v to_o favour_n religion_n aught_o to_o suppose_v not_o pretend_v to_o make_v the_o religion_n reasonable_a reason_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o human_a law_n but_o human_a law_n can_v not_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o religion_n how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o press_v too_o much_o the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n against_o so_o great_a and_o zealous_a a_o multitude_n as_o the_o sectary_n be_v their_o error_n ought_v to_o be_v confute_v with_o reason_n not_o rigour_n the_o prelatic_a clergy_n who_o spiritual_a censure_n and_o authority_n ought_v to_o quash_n all_o dissension_n do_v cause_v the_o mischief_n and_o engage_v the_o state_n in_o perpetual_a trouble_n for_o maintain_v by_o force_n of_o law_n the_o improbability_n of_o their_o character_n and_o jurisdiction_n against_o the_o evidence_n of_o reason_n subsect_v i._n the_o prelatic_a character_n and_o religion_n be_v so_o incredible_a that_o few_o serious_a man_n in_o their_o judgement_n continue_v any_o long_a time_n prelaticks_n by_o pretend_v a_o mean_a and_o moderation_n between_o papist_n and_o presbiterian_o the_o prelaticks_n fall_v into_o manifest_a contradiction_n in_o defend_v their_o own_o character_n doctrine_n and_o discipline_n how_o learned_a protestant_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o prince_n may_v force_v his_o subject_n by_o law_n to_o his_o protestant_a persuasion_n and_o that_o every_o protestant_a subject_n notwithstanding_o the_o prince_n his_o prerogative_n have_v a_o private_a authority_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o prince_n his_o religion_n and_o be_v bind_v to_o stick_v to_o his_o own_o contrary_a judgement_n what_o great_a confusion_n this_o must_v occasion_n it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o religion_n that_o give_v private_a man_n liberty_n to_o judge_v of_o religious_a controversy_n to_o cause_v such_o disorder_n how_o this_o inconvenience_n be_v prevent_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n one_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o the_o protestant_n be_v that_o when_o protestant_n rebel_n they_o do_v not_o violat_a the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n which_o make_v every_o man_n supreme_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o consequence_n of_o state_n when_o catholic_n rebel_n they_o go_v against_o their_o principle_n that_o give_v no_o such_o supremacy_n or_o liberty_n in_o these_o last_o one_o hundred_o year_n there_o have_v be_v more_o rebellion_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o protestancy_n then_o have_v be_v since_o christ_n time_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n in_o what_o sense_n the_o roman_n catholic_n be_v a_o grow_a religion_n whether_o it_o be_v policy_n to_o persecute_v a_o religion_n that_o increase_v against_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o promote_v a_o religion_n that_o do_v not_o increase_v with_o all_o the_o help_n of_o law_n and_o favour_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n be_v think_v to_o be_v so_o unjust_a even_o by_o protestant_n that_o no_o honest_a and_o sober_a man_n think_v they_o fit_a to_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n whether_o it_o be_v policy_n to_o continue_v such_o statute_n all_o seditious_a person_n begin_v their_o design_n against_o the_o government_n with_o press_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o statute_n and_o sometime_o thereby_o make_v the_o zealous_a and_o giddy_a multitude_n rebel_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o piety_n and_o policy_n to_o repeal_v statute_n that_o if_o put_v in_o execution_n make_v the_o nation_n and_o government_n infamous_a if_o not_o put_v in_o execution_n may_v occasion_v rebellion_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o indiscreet_a zeal_n in_o the_o giddy_a multitude_n beside_o their_o be_v enact_v to_o suppress_v the_o principle_n and_o destroy_v the_o person_n of_o the_o catholic_n party_n which_o maintain_v the_o stevards_o right_a to_o the_o crown_n aught_o to_o facilitat_fw-la the_o repeal_n subsect_v ii_o the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n of_o england_n against_o catholic_n can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o inquisition_n or_o by_o law_n and_o edict_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o emperor_n against_o heretic_n the_o first_o english_a protestant_n acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v heretic_n when_o they_o petition_v to_o the_o parliament_n 1._o ed._n 6._o for_o a_o repeal_n of_o all_o ancient_a statute_n against_o heretic_n not_o dare_v to_o preach_v and_o profess_v their_o reform_a doctrine_n until_o the_o parliament_n have_v condescend_v to_o their_o petition_n queen_n elizabeth_n reformation_n confirm_v by_o sanguinary_a statute_n diametrica_o opposite_a to_o primitive_a christianity_n and_o therefore_o very_o strange_a that_o man_n so_o know_v as_o the_o english_a nobility_n and_o gentry_n shall_v continue_v they_o or_o that_o person_n so_o pious_a loyal_a and_o well_o breed_v shall_v not_o either_o out_o of_o christian_a charity_n to_o catholic_n or_o out_o of_o a_o dutiful_a civility_n to_o the_o royal_a family_n that_o now_o reign_v repeal_v law_n enact_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n for_o ruin_n of_o the_o stevards_n party_n and_o for_o exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o crown_n the_o three_o part_n contain_v the_o conscience_n and_o conveniency_n of_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n prove_v by_o the_o little_a conscience_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n in_o maintain_v protestancy_n with_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n and_o by_o the_o great_a inconvenience_n this_o monarchy_n suffer_v by_o press_v the_o prelatic_a and_o protestant_n religion_n upon_o tender_a conscience_n sect_n i._n demonstrate_v that_o either_o the_o learned_a protestant_n or_o the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n be_v cheat_n prove_v by_o the_o impossibility_n of_o conceal_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o the_o true_a church_n otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n of_o either_o clergy_n so_o manifest_a be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o particular_o mention_v in_o scripture_n and_o as_o one_o of_o the_o two_o clergye_n be_v cheat_n so_o either_o the_o catholic_n or_o protestant_n laity_n be_v damnable_o careless_a in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n reason_n why_o the_o catholic_n laity_n can_v not_o be_v think_v careless_a the_o protestant_a may_n how_o easy_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v know_v and_o how_o the_o protestant_a laity_n may_v be_v considerable_o ease_v from_o extraordinary_a tax_n by_o inform_v themselves_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n the_o impudence_n and_o impiety_n wherewith_o bp._n jevell_n and_o the_o first_o prelatic_a clergy_n impose_v protestancy_n upon_o this_o nation_n to_o favour_v q._n elizab_n pretension_n and_o to_o raise_v themselves_o from_o pedantry_n to_o peerage_n prove_v by_o jevell_n challenge_n and_o sermon_n at_o paul_n cross_n and_o by_o he_o and_o the_o prelatic_a clergye_n apology_n for_o their_o church_n of_o england_n pretend_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n be_v protestant_a how_o this_o imposture_n be_v confute_v by_o the_o catholic_n writer_n and_o the_o protestant_a writer_n force_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o own_o error_n how_o the_o same_o imposture_n be_v again_o maintain_v by_o succeed_a prelaticks_n and_o how_o unsuccessful_o how_o tailor_n revive_v now_o again_o the_o same_o shameful_a imposture_n and_o with_o how_o great_a infamy_n to_o his_o person_n and_o discredit_v to_o his_o cause_n the_o protestant_a laity_n can_v not_o without_o commit_v a_o damnable_a sin_n give_v any_o credit_n to_o their_o clergy_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n after_o so_o many_o and_o so_o manifest_a discovery_n of_o the_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n whereby_o alone_a they_o defend_v protestancy_n how_o a_o conference_n and_o trial_n about_o this_o matter_n can_v not_o be_v conscientious_o deny_v nor_o the_o denial_n stand_v with_o good_a policy_n sect_n ii_o the_o same_o further_o demonstrate_v and_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n to_o suspect_v the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n subect_a i._n and_o ii_o whether_o it_o be_v charity_n to_o treat_v cheat_n with_o ceremony_n when_o they_o be_v convict_v of_o damn_v soul_n by_o fraud_n and_o wilful_a falsification_n and_o whether_o the_o first_o reformer_n of_o the_o english_a church_n cranmer_n and_o his_o comrade_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v censure_v according_o the_o fraud_n and_o wilful_a falsification_n hypocrisy_n incontinency_n impiety_n and_o atheism_n of_o the_o prelalatick_a protestant_a clergy_n in_o k._n edward_n
a_o ridiculous_a church_n of_o protestant_n he_o fancy_n and_o deduce_v only_o from_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n innocent_a 3._o and_o compose_v of_o a_o rabblement_n of_o all_o sectary_n divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o dissent_v also_o from_o protestant_n prove_v in_o particular_a instance_n of_o waldenses_n albigenses_n wickleff_n and_o other_o his_o three_o simple_a miracle_n of_o luther_n and_o how_o fox_n describe_v a_o revelation_n of_o his_o own_o and_o how_o he_o be_v make_v a_o fool_n by_o revelation_n the_o prelatik_a clergy_n recommend_v fox_n his_o work_n to_o all_o godly_a people_n though_o the_o learned_a of_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o fraud_n folly_n and_o fable_n subsect_v i._n iohn_n fox_n his_o calendar_n of_o protestant_a saint_n in_o all_o 456._o whereof_o bishop_n martyr_n 5._o and_o cranmer_n the_o principal_a by_o he_o you_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n bishop_n confessor_n 1._o virgin_n martyr_n none_o maid_n martyr_n 3._o king_n and_o queen_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n 1._o edward_z 6._o other_o man_n and_o woman_n martyr_n 393_o other_o man_n and_o woman_n confessor_n 57_o the_o great_a disputer_n against_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n of_o these_o martyr_n be_v a_o cook_n a_o cowherd_n a_o tailor_n a_o blaksmith_n a_o miller_n wife_n a_o cutler_n wife_n and_o a_o marry_a maid_n so_o fox_n call_v she_o how_o mad_o these_o poor_a soul_n run_v to_o the_o fire_n fox_n his_o martyr_n be_v all_o fanatic_n subsect_v ii_o wilful_a falsification_n commit_v by_o john_n fox_n in_o his_o act_n and_o monument_n he_o falsify_v st._n bede_n and_o a_o ancient_a english_a synod_n to_o make_v they_o quartodecimans_n and_o to_o favour_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o divorce_n he_o falsify_v also_o st._n antoninus_n to_o discredit_v pope_n gregory_n 7._o alias_o hildebrand_n and_o a_o council_n to_o favour_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n the_o ancient_a greek_n and_o latin_a church_n hold_v the_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n 120._o lie_n in_o three_o leaf_n of_o fox_n his_o book_n and_o more_o in_o the_o whole_a then_o in_o sleydans_n history_n though_o eleven_o thousand_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o sleydan_n by_o the_o german_a writer_n his_o censure_a act_n of_o ancient_a english_a parliament_n for_o condemn_a rebel_n and_o heretic_n his_o falsify_v sr._n john_n oldcastle_n profession_n of_o faith_n to_o make_v we_o believe_v he_o be_v a_o protestant_n in_o the_o point_n of_o purgatory_n subsect_v iii_o doctor_n chark_n egregious_a falsification_n of_o st._n austin_n and_o how_o false_o he_o excuse_v luther_n doctrine_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o adultery_n and_o incest_n subsect_v iu._n arch_n cranmer_z and_o peter_n martyr_n falsification_n against_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass._n sect_n vi._n how_o some_o protestant_a writer_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n time_n see_v their_o fellow_n prove_v falsifier_n wave_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n and_o yet_o the_o other_o continue_v their_o former_a course_n of_o falsify_v both_o father_n and_o counsel_n of_o whitaker_n arch._n whitgift_n and_o fulk_n how_o they_o contemn_v the_o father_n and_o church_n when_o they_o relate_v ancient_a condemn_v heresy_n that_o protestant_n now_o profess_v doctor_n willet_n a_o great_a impostor_n how_o impudent_o he_o falsify_v take_v god_n to_o witness_v he_o will_v speak_v nothing_o but_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o general_a custom_n of_o protestant_a writer_n sect_n vii_o falsification_n and_o fraud_n of_o the_o prelatic_a and_o protestant_n clergy_n ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o k._n james_n his_o reign_n for_o continue_v and_o maintain_v protestancy_n subsect_v i._n their_o corruption_n of_o scripture_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o king_n command_v the_o english_a bibles_n to_o be_v correct_v they_o correct_v some_o few_o thing_n that_o give_v advantage_n to_o the_o puritan_n against_o episcopacy_n leave_v other_o corruption_n as_o former_o instead_o of_o correct_v their_o false_a scripture_n they_o forge_v new_a register_n how_o they_o falsify_v scripture_n in_o the_o first_o commandment_n exod._n 20.4_o and_o yet_o object_n against_o we_o catholik_o that_o we_o take_v away_o the_o 2._o commandment_n how_o absurd_a this_o their_o objection_n be_v see_v also_o how_o they_o corrupt_a scripture_n to_o humour_n k._n james_n in_o the_o supremacy_n divers_a other_o arch._n abbot_n and_o the_o bp._n of_o gloucester_n alter_v the_o true_a translation_n of_o st._n peter_n epistle_n to_o impugn_v purgatory_n accuse_v of_o this_o impiety_n by_o sir_n henry_n savill_n that_o translate_v it_o right_o how_o they_o corrupt_a scripture_n against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n that_o saint_n in_o heaven_n do_v hear_v our_o prayer_n prove_v by_o reason_n and_o authority_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o than_o credible_a that_o archippus_n abbot_n who_o falsify_v scripture_n will_v forge_v register_n how_o unreasonable_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n in_o their_o dedicatory_a to_o king_n james_n set_v before_o the_o new_a translation_n of_o scripture_n desire_v his_o majesty_n to_o protect_v the_o same_o against_o the_o objection_n of_o puritan_n and_o papist_n subsect_v ii_o of_o dean_n walsinghams_n scruple_n and_o search_v into_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o how_o by_o discover_v the_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n of_o his_o own_o protestant_a clergy_n he_o become_v a_o roman_n catholic_n the_o occasion_n of_o his_o doubt_n his_o memorial_n to_o k._n james_n as_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o satisfaction_n his_o read_n of_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o censure_n and_o his_o judgement_n thereof_o how_o that_o book_n prove_v scripture_n be_v more_o clear_a for_o catholic_n tenet_n then_o for_o protestant_n of_o dean_n walsinghams_n appearance_n before_o his_o grace_n at_o lambeth_n his_o conference_n with_o doctor_n covell_n this_o doctor_n fraud_n and_o folly_n in_o divert_v walsingham_n from_o the_o truth_n of_o dean_n walsinghams_n third_n and_o four_o appearance_n before_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n how_o he_o be_v abuse_v and_o threaten_v by_o his_o grace_n for_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o knight_n of_o the_o corner_n perkins_n and_o his_o persuasion_n how_o the_o archbishop_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o a_o man_n that_o press_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n remit_v dean_n walsingham_n to_o the_o commissary_n of_o st._n alban_n and_o to_o other_o who_o give_v he_o no_o satisfaction_n of_o bell_n libel_n deliver_v by_o the_o archbishop_n to_o satisfy_v mr._n walsingham_n his_o last_o appearance_n before_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o a_o assembly_n of_o divine_n how_o in_o their_o presence_n he_o produce_v the_o corruption_n and_o falsification_n of_o the_o protestant_a book_n recommend_v unto_o he_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o yet_o neither_o he_o nor_o that_o assembly_n dare_v compare_v mr._n walsinghams_n note_n of_o fraud_n with_o the_o same_o book_n as_o mr._n walsingham_n desire_v but_o dismiss_v he_o wish_v he_o be_v far_o enough_o for_o discover_v their_o cheat_n and_o the_o weakness_n of_o their_o religion_n subsect_v iii_o reflection_n upon_o mr._n walsinghams_n relation_n this_o like_a case_n and_o cheat_n do_v happen_v as_o often_o as_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n observe_v any_o conscientious_a person_n trouble_v in_o conscience_n through_o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o their_o religion_n a_o case_n of_o conscience_n concern_v one_o million_o of_o revenue_n propose_v and_o desire_v it_o be_v decide_v by_o the_o parliament_n and_o that_o some_o know_a person_n my_o lord_n chancellor_n be_v the_o moderator_n of_o the_o conference_n for_o that_o purpose_n subsect_v iu._n a_o relation_n of_o a_o trial_n hold_v in_o france_n about_o religion_n how_o necessary_a the_o like_a be_v in_o england_n for_o the_o credit_n of_o protestant_n and_o convenience_n of_o the_o state_n sect_n viii_o protestant_n falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o safety_n of_o king_n and_o with_o civil_a society_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n how_o the_o protestant_a writer_n have_v be_v worsted_n at_o scripture_n counsel_n father_n &c_n &c_n now_o endeavour_v to_o defend_v protestancy_n by_o reason_n of_o state_n and_o become_v unfortunat_a politician_n divers_a falsification_n touch_v this_o subject_n publish_v by_o morton_n bishop_n of_o duresm_n how_o he_o answer_v some_o objection_n with_o new_a lie_n other_o which_o lay_v the_o blame_n upon_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o dr._n stork_n etc._n etc._n to_o most_o objection_n he_o give_v no_o answer_n the_o whole_a national_a synod_n and_o protestant_n clergy_n concur_v in_o a_o imposture_n concern_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n against_o roman_a catholic_n the_o protestant_n falsification_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n about_o depose_v of_o king_n about_o cheat_v excommunicate_v person_n about_o murder_v and_o massacre_a protestant_n diverse_a falsification_n to_o assert_v a_o spiritual_a supremacy_n in_o king_n according_a to_o the_o
law_n of_o england_n our_o king_n may_v minister_v all_o ecclesiastical_a function_n consecrat_fw-mi bishop_n and_o their_o letter_n patent_n be_v sufficient_a to_o give_v any_o lay_a person_n man_n or_o woman_n power_n to_o consecrat_v bishop_n and_o priest_n ten_o wilful_a falsification_n set_v down_o together_o by_o bish_n morton_n for_o prove_v that_o catholic_n hold_v the_o pope_n can_v be_v depose_v nor_o become_v a_o heretic_n primate_n bramhall_n falsification_n to_o prove_v that_o pope_n may_v and_o have_v decree_v heretical_a doctrine_n sect_n ix_o prove_v by_o reason_n and_o example_n that_o no_o religion_n be_v so_o little_a dangerous_a to_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o safety_n of_o king_n or_o so_o advantageous_a to_o the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o subject_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a supremacy_n bellarmin_n the_o author_n most_o except_v against_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o depose_v of_o king_n say_v that_o a_o king_n can_v be_v depose_v for_o be_v a_o heretic_n unless_o he_o force_v his_o subject_n to_o heresy_n the_o author_n of_o this_o treatise_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o promote_v beauties_n doctrine_n but_o only_o show_v there_o can_v be_v no_o danger_n in_o it_o though_o it_o be_v allow_v as_o true_a not_o any_o thing_n more_o contrary_a to_o sound_v policy_n then_o to_o lay_v for_o the_o foundation_n of_o loyalty_n a_o oath_n or_o engagement_n against_o opinion_n plausible_a popular_a and_o practise_v the_o best_a way_n to_o suppress_v they_o be_v to_o silence_v the_o author_n not_o censure_v their_o doctrine_n how_o little_a the_o pope_n power_n be_v fear_v by_o protestant_n though_o they_o make_v it_o the_o pretext_n of_o persecute_v catholic_n how_o little_a his_o censure_n can_v disturb_v the_o government_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o notoriousness_n of_o the_o fact_n and_o the_o solemnity_n of_o his_o sentence_n require_v for_o their_o validity_n how_o arch_n laud_n and_o other_o protestant_n contradict_v themselves_o in_o this_o matter_n a_o fancy_a possibility_n without_o probability_n can_v bring_v no_o danger_n to_o the_o government_n how_o unreasonable_a it_o be_v to_o exact_v a_o more_o strict_a profession_n of_o allegiance_n from_o catholic_a subject_n to_o a_o protestant_n sovereign_n then_o be_v give_v by_o any_o other_o catholic_n to_o their_o catholic_n sovereign_a that_o the_o french_a king_n exact_v such_o engagement_n or_o remonstrance_n from_o their_o subject_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n as_o be_v require_v in_o england_n and_o ireland_n from_o catholik_o against_o the_o same_o be_v a_o gross_a mistake_n all_o such_o dispute_n be_v prohibit_v in_o france_n as_o tend_v to_o sedition_n and_o no_o way_n profitable_a the_o censure_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n and_o some_o doctor_n of_o the_o sorbon_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n disannul_v by_o the_o king_n and_o privy_a council_n in_o france_n protestant_n can_v clear_v their_o own_o principle_n in_o this_o particular_a from_o the_o aspersion_n they_o lie_v on_o the_o catholic_n tenet_n one_o of_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n be_v a_o power_n in_o the_o people_n to_o depose_v sovereign_n and_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o gospel_n prove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o all_o kingdom_n and_o state_n that_o receive_v the_o reformation_n even_o the_o prelatic_a of_o england_n sect_n x._o that_o protestant_n can_v never_o prove_v any_o of_o the_o wilful_a falsification_n wherewith_o they_o charge_v roman_n catholic_n writer_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n themselves_o be_v convict_v of_o that_o crime_n whensoever_o they_o attempt_v to_o make_v good_a their_o charge_n against_o we_o of_o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la bp._n tailor_n objection_n in_o the_o dissuasive_a as_o also_o bp._n morton_n bp._n jewel_n etc._n etc._n retort_v upon_o themselves_o item_n sutcliff_n accusation_n against_o bellarmin_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n confirm_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o pope_n spiritual_a supremacy_n which_o that_o council_n assert_n subsect_v i._n protestant's_n convict_a by_o belarmin_n of_o hold_v 20._o ancient_a condemn_a heresy_n and_o how_o fourteen_o be_v admit_v by_o they_o or_o at_o least_o unanswered_a and_o the_o other_o six_o whereof_o they_o endeavour_v to_o clear_v themselves_o be_v excuse_v only_o by_o falsify_v father_n and_o catholic_n author_n among_o which_o be_v two_o pelagian_a heresy_n two_o novatian_a one_o manichean_a and_o one_o of_o the_o arian_n beside_o these_o protestant_n maintain_v justification_n by_o only_a faith_n with_o the_o simonian_o and_o eunomian_o that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n with_o the_o florinian_o that_o woman_n may_v be_v and_o be_v priest_n with_o the_o peputian_o that_o concupiscency_n be_v a_o sin_n with_o proclus_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v invisible_a for_o many_o age_n with_o the_o donatist_n that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o fast_v the_o lent_n pray_v nor_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o the_o aerian_o that_o saint_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v pray_v unto_o nor_o their_o relic_n or_o image_n worship_v with_o vigilantius_n subsect_v ii_o falsification_n object_v against_o baronius_n by_o dr._n sutcliff_n how_o ridiculous_a the_o difference_n between_o the_o falsification_n object_v by_o catholic_n and_o those_o that_o be_v object_v by_o protestant_n sect_n xi_o calumny_n and_o falsification_n of_o luther_n clavin_n archbishop_n laud_n and_o primate_n usher_n to_o discredit_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o uphold_v protestancy_n against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o knowledge_n what_o impudent_a impostor_n be_v luther_n and_o calvin_n prove_v in_o many_o particular_n fraud_n and_o falsification_n and_o calumny_n of_o primate_n usher_n call_v the_o irish_a saint_n by_o protestant_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n against_o sacramental_a confession_n against_o absolution_n of_o sin_n by_o a_o priest_n his_o cheat_n concern_v duli●_n and_o latria_n no_o new_a invention_n of_o jesuit_n but_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o father_n against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n his_o imposture_n of_o the_o breviary_n of_o the_o premonstratensian_a order_n subsect_v i●_n of_o bp._n laud_n the_o english_a protestant_a martyr_n how_o fraudulent_o he_o will_v fain_o excuse_v the_o modern_a greek_n from_o be_v heretic_n notwithstanding_o his_o 39_o prelatic_a article_n condemn_v their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o heresy_n he_o abuse_v s._n austin_n to_o make_v protestant_n believe_v that_o general_a counsel_n may_v err_v against_o scripture_n and_o evident_a reason_n he_o abuse_v vincentius_n lyrinensis_n lay_v to_o that_o ancient_a father_n charge_n his_o grace_n own_o blasphemy_n and_o commit_v therein_o many_o fraud_n he_o falsify_v orcam_n and_o resolve_v the_o prelatic_a faith_n into_o the_o imaginary_a light_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o private_a spirit_n and_o therein_o agree_v with_o presbiterian_o and_o fanatik_n and_o pretend_v that_o prelaticks_n be_v not_o schismatic_n and_o sectary_n but_o to_o excuse_v they_o commit_v divers_a fraud_n his_o pretence_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n for_o private_a church_n to_o reform_v themselves_o confute_v his_o doctrine_n do_v justify_v all_o the_o sectary_n proceed_v against_o himself_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n his_o vanity_n in_o pretend_v that_o the_o church_n of_o britain_n be_v independent_a of_o the_o pope_n as_o also_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n his_o fraudulent_a and_o absurd_a explanation_n of_o s._n ireneus_fw-la against_o the_o primacy_n of_o rome_n item_n of_o the_o gallican_n liberty_n his_o abuse_n and_o corrupt_v s._n greg._n nazian_n because_o that_o saint_n assert_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n his_o falsify_v of_o gerson_n upon_o the_o like_a account_n a_o fair_a offer_n to_o protestant_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o falsification_n sect_n xii_o whether_o it_o be_v piety_n or_o policy_n to_o give_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n of_o these_o 3._o kingdom_n a_o million_o sterl_n per_fw-la a_o for_o maintain_v by_o such_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n as_o hitherto_o have_v be_v allege_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o also_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v fallible_a and_o by_o consequence_n for_o all_o they_o know_v fall_v and_o how_o the_o say_v million_o per_fw-la a_o may_v be_v conscientious_o apply_v to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o people_n without_o any_o dangerous_a disturbance_n to_o the_o government_n it_o be_v policy_n in_o q._n elizabeth_n to_o make_v such_o a_o clergy_n and_o religion_n but_o not_o piety_n the_o case_n be_v now_o alter_v neither_o piety_n nor_o policy_n to_o preserve_v either_o no_o seditious_a or_o interest_v person_n can_v disturb_v the_o government_n by_o pretend_v zeal_n for_o preserve_v a_o religion_n and_o clergy_n so_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o soul_n and_o state_n if_o liberty_n be_v grant_v to_o discover_v the_o cheat_n whereby_o the_o
people_n be_v abuse_v many_o protestant_a mistake_n wherewith_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v fool_v be_v now_o clear_v and_o their_o own_o conveniency_n will_v invite_v they_o to_o examine_v further_o the_o error_n of_o doctrine_n incident_a to_o education_n from_o which_o error_n the_o protestant_a church_n do_v acknowledge_v itself_o not_o exempt_v if_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v true_a such_o a_o trial_n as_o we_o desire_v will_v be_v of_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o professor_n thereof_o and_o confirm_v they_o in_o their_o religion_n and_o convert_v papist_n and_o sectary_n to_o the_o same_o if_o it_o be_v falf_n beside_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n by_o a_o discovery_n and_o procession_n of_o the_o roman_a truth_n these_o kingdom_n will_v be_v able_a not_o only_o to_o defend_v themselves_o but_o offend_v foreign_a enemy_n after_o we_o be_v enable_v thereunto_o by_o a_o conscientious_a addition_n of_o a_o million_o sterl_n per_fw-la a_o to_o the_o public_a revenue_n no_o danger_n of_o sacrilege_n in_o apply_v the_o church_n revenue_n to_o pious_a and_o public_a use_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o people_n practise_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n clergy_n not_o one_o good_a reason_n why_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ought_v not_o to_o admit_v of_o such_o a_o public_a conference_n as_o we_o propose_v and_o desire_v bishop_n laud_n reason_n to_o the_o contrary_n confute_v the_o deny_v and_o differ_v it_o a_o sign_n that_o protestant_n be_v guilty_a catholic_n grant_v conference_n to_o protestant_n whensoever_o they_o demand_v it_o the_o protestant_a laity_n have_v reason_n to_o question_v their_o clergy_n ordination_n and_o character_n as_o well_o as_o their_o doctrine_n the_o new_a change_n of_o their_o form_n of_o ordination_n very_o suspicious_a that_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v such_o a_o grow_a religion_n prove_v it_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n fit_a to_o be_v make_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o state_n the_o four_o part_n the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n in_o every_o particular_a wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n be_v confirm_v by_o considerable_a miracle_n record_v not_o in_o vain_a legend_n or_o modern_a author_n but_o in_o the_o most_o authentic_a history_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n sect_n j._n such_o miracle_n as_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n be_v true_a miracle_n the_o doctrine_n confirm_v by_o those_o miracle_n can_v be_v reject_v without_o doubt_v of_o god_n veracity_n every_o protestant_n do_v see_v though_o not_o observe_v true_a miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n what_o great_a scrutiny_n be_v make_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n into_o true_a miracle_n and_o the_o life_n of_o man_n that_o be_v to_o be_v canonize_v for_o saint_n there_o can_v be_v no_o combination_n or_o cheat_n in_o such_o matter_n some_o miracle_n permanent_a that_o be_v see_v by_o all_o man_n as_o that_o of_o s._n januarius_n in_o naples_n a_o undeniable_a miracle_n of_o s._n francis_n xavier_n wrought_v upon_o marcello_n mastrilli_n most_o remarkable_a for_o many_o circumstance_n miracle_n to_o confirm_v popery_n relate_v by_o the_o magdeburgian_n centurist_n but_o by_o they_o absurd_o attribute_v to_o the_o devil_n or_o say_v to_o be_v seign_v true_a miracle_n can_v be_v wrought_v to_o confirm_v falsehood_n it_o be_v against_o god_n veracity_n to_o permit_v the_o same_o miracle_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n in_o confirmation_n whereof_o thy_o be_v wrought_v the_o difference_n between_o antichrist_n and_o catholic_n miracle_n or_o true_a and_o false_a miracle_n that_o all_o the_o roman_a catholic_n adore_v the_o sacrament_n and_o believe_v transubstantiation_n as_o also_o other_o point_n of_o popery_n be_v a_o evident_a miracle_n of_o god_n and_o can_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o devil_n power_n or_o art_n the_o devil_n temps_fw-fr man_n to_o be_v heretic_n by_o the_o mean_n and_o ministry_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o by_o humour_v the_o same_o not_o against_o the_o evidence_n and_o inclination_n of_o sense_n the_o general_a sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v undeniable_a miracle_n no_o other_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_n catholic_n can_v show_v those_o sign_n sect_n ii_o of_o particular_a miracle_n that_o confirm_v the_o roman_n catholic_n tenant_n and_o our_o sense_n of_o scripture_n relate_v by_o s._n chrysostome_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n s._n austin_n s._n nilus_n s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n s._n optatus_n s._n gregory_n the_o great_a and_o other_o in_o confirmation_n of_o adore_v the_o b._n sacrament_n transubstantiation_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o purgatory_n primate_n usher_v falsification_n and_o fraud_n to_o discredit_v some_o of_o these_o miracle_n discover_v of_o miracle_n in_o england_n relate_v by_o waldensis_n and_o record_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterburye_n register_n how_o protestant_n falsify_v the_o very_a statute_n and_o law_n book_n miracle_n wrought_v by_o s._n bernard_n to_o confirm_v every_o controvert_v point_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n against_o the_o protestant_n protestant_n writer_n confess_v s._n bernard_n be_v a_o saint_n and_o yet_o say_v his_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o devil_n how_o absurd_a sect_n iii_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v the_o worship_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n record_v by_o st._n paulinus_n st._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n st._n athanasius_n st._n hierom_n st._n gregory_n tu●onensis_n nicephorus_n and_o theodoret._n how_o by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v accustom_v to_o sign_n themselves_o frequent_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross._n the_o first_o and_o worst_a heretic_n be_v enemy_n of_o that_o sign_n christ_n cross_n multiply_v by_o miracle_n in_o st._n paulinus_n his_o time_n protestant_n miracle_n be_v but_o cheat_v not_o one_o of_o they_o true_a protestant_n agree_v with_o pagan_n heretic_n and_o magician_n in_o contemn_v miracle_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross._n how_o the_o devil_n dread_v the_o same_o sect_n iu._n miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_n worship_n of_o jmage_n relate_v by_o the_o most_o eminent_a author_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o by_o the_o 2._o council_n of_o nice_a a_o 787._o wherein_o be_v 350._o bishop_n st._n peter_n shadow_n be_v the_o image_n of_o his_o body_n and_o by_o scripture_n act._n 5.15_o it_o appear_v to_o have_v wrought_v miracle_n the_o protestant_a imposture_n concern_v christ_n statue_n that_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la break_v confute_v s._n john_n d●mascens_n hand_n that_o be_v cut_v off_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o image-breaker_n restore_v by_o his_o pray_v at_o our_o lady_n image_n the_o protestant_a evasion_n of_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n confute_v sect_n v._o miracle_n relate_v by_o s._n austin_n s._n ambrose_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n s._n chrysostom_n s._n hierom_n s._n optatus_n s._n bede_n s._n bernard_n s._n anselm_n and_o other_o in_o confirmation_n of_o prayer_n to_o saint_n worship_v their_o relic_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o holy_a water_n the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmaon_n confession_n and_o extreme_a unction_n the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n confirm_v by_o the_o same_o miracle_n that_o confirm_v worship_n of_o saint_n pilgrimage_n etc._n etc._n the_o truth_n of_o all_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterburye_n miracle_n evidence_v by_o one_o that_o fox_n recount_v and_o pick_v out_o to_o discredit_v the_o test_n what_o little_a reason_n protestant_n have_v to_o suspect_v our_o catholic_n miracle_n of_o forgery_n how_o severe_a the_o roman_a church_n be_v in_o the_o scrutiny_n and_o punishment_n of_o such_o imposture_n reflection_n upon_o bishop_n tailor_n treatise_n of_o confirmation_n confession_n and_o extreme_a unction_n maintain_v to_o be_v sacrament_n by_o ancient_a father_n s._n bede_n holiness_n and_o learning_n acknowledge_v by_o protestant_n he_o relate_v miracle_n whereby_o the_o error_n of_o protestancy_n be_v confute_v how_o absurd_o protestant_n contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o miracle_n admit_v it_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n how_o ridiculous_a john_n fox_n his_o miracle_n be_v how_o unwise_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n countenance_n his_o act_n and_o monument_n that_o have_v so_o spread_v puritanism_n in_o england_n a_o parallel_n between_o protestancy_n and_o mahometism_n finis_fw-la the_o conclusion_n to_o the_o right_n honourable_a the_o committee_n of_o parliament_n for_o religion_n may_v it_o please_v your_o honour_n venerable_a st._n bede_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n recount_v how_o st._n austin_n the_o monk_n 700._o and_o our_o apostle_n send_v by_o st._n gregory_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o convert_v our_o saxon_a ancestor_n from_o paganism_n to_o christian_a religion_n arrive_v at_o the_o isle_n of_o tanet_n in_o kent_n give_v notice_n unto_o king_n ethelbert_n than_o a_o